Selected quad for the lemma: book_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
book_n life_n see_v write_v 5,407 5 5.3704 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A31414 Apostolici, or, The history of the lives, acts, death, and martyrdoms of those who were contemporary with, or immediately succeeded the apostles as also the most eminent of the primitive fathers for the first three hundred years : to which is added, a chronology of the three first ages of the church / by William Cave ... Cave, William, 1637-1713. 1677 (1677) Wing C1590; ESTC R13780 422,305 406

There are 31 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

learning_n his_o write_n his_o hypotypose_n photius_n his_o account_n of_o they_o corrupt_v by_o the_o arrian_n his_o book_n yet_o extant_a and_o the_o orderly_a gradation_n of_o they_o his_o stromata_n what_o the_o design_n of_o it_o his_o stile_n what_o in_o this_o what_o in_o his_o other_o book_n a_o short_a apology_n for_o some_o unwary_a assertion_n in_o his_o write_n his_o write_n enumerate_v pag._n 193._o the_o life_n of_o tertullian_n presbyter_n of_o carthage_n his_o name_n whence_o his_o father_n who_o his_o education_n in_o all_o kind_n of_o learning_n his_o skill_n in_o the_o roman_a law_n different_a from_o tertylian_a the_o lawyer_n his_o way_n of_o life_n before_o his_o conversion_n inquire_v into_o his_o marry_a condition_n his_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n when_o the_o great_a cruelty_n use_v towards_o the_o christian_n severus_n his_o kindness_n to_o they_o tertullia_n excellent_a apology_n in_o their_o behalf_n his_o address_n to_o scapula_n and_o the_o tendency_n of_o that_o discourse_n severus_n his_o violent_a persecute_v the_o christian_n his_o prohibition_n of_o the_o heteriae_fw-la tertullia_n book_n to_o the_o martyr_n and_o concern_v patience_n his_o zeal_n against_o heresy_n and_o write_n that_o way_n his_o book_n de_fw-fr pallio_fw-la when_o write_v and_o upon_o what_o occasion_n his_o become_a presbyter_n when_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr corona_n and_o what_o the_o occasion_n of_o it_o his_o decline_a from_o the_o catholic_a party_n montanus_n who_o and_o whence_o his_o principle_n and_o practice_n tertullia_n own_v they_o and_o upon_o what_o occasion_n his_o morose_n and_o stubborn_a temper_n how_o far_o he_o comply_v with_o the_o montanist_n and_o acknowledge_v the_o paraclete_n how_o he_o be_v impose_v upon_o his_o write_n against_o the_o catholic_n the_o severity_n of_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n episcopus_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la in_o what_o sense_n mean_v by_o tertullian_n concern_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o separate_a meeting_n at_o carthage_n his_o death_n his_o character_n his_o singular_a part_n and_o learning_n his_o book_n his_o phrase_n and_o stile_n what_o contribute_v to_o its_o perplexedness_n and_o obscurity_n his_o un-orthodox_a opinion_n a_o brief_a plea_n for_o he_o pag._n 201._o the_o life_n of_o origen_n presbyter_n catechist_n of_o alexandria_n origen_n where_o and_o when_o bear_v several_a conjecture_n about_o the_o original_n of_o his_o name_n his_o father_n who_o his_o juvenile_a education_n and_o great_a towardliness_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n his_o philosophical_a study_n under_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n his_o institution_n under_o ammonius_n ammonius_n who_o his_o fame_n and_o excellency_n confess_v by_o the_o gentile_a philosopher_n another_o origen_n his_o contemporary_a these_o two_o heedless_o confound_v his_o father_n martyrdom_n and_o the_o confiscation_n of_o his_o estate_n origen_n resolute_a encouragement_n of_o his_o father_n his_o own_o passionate_a desire_n of_o martyrdom_n his_o maintenance_n by_o a_o honourable_a matron_n of_o alexandria_n his_o zeal_n against_o heretic_n his_o set_n up_o a_o private_a school_n he_o succeed_v clemens_n in_o the_o catechetic_a school_n at_o eighteen_o year_n of_o age._n the_o frequency_n of_o his_o auditor_n many_o of_o they_o martyr_n for_o the_o faith_n origen_n resolution_n in_o attend_v upon_o the_o martyr_n his_o danger_n his_o courageous_a act_n at_o the_o temple_n of_o serapis_n his_o emasculate_v himself_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o the_o eminent_a chastity_n of_o those_o primitive_a time_n origen_n journey_n to_o rome_n and_o return_v to_o alexandria_n his_o take_n in_o a_o colleague_n into_o the_o catechetic_a office_n he_o learn_v the_o hebrew_n tongue_n the_o prudent_a method_n of_o his_o teach_v ambrose_n convert_v who_o he_o be_v his_o great_a intimacy_n with_o origen_n origen_n send_v for_o by_o the_o governor_n of_o arabia_n his_o journey_n into_o palestin_n and_o teach_v at_o caesarea_n remand_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n alexander_n severus_n his_o excellent_a virtue_n and_o kindness_n for_o the_o christian_a religion_n origen_n send_v for_o by_o the_o empress_n mammaea_n to_o antioch_n he_o begin_v to_o write_v his_o commentary_n how_o many_o notary_n and_o transcriber_n employ_v and_o by_o who_o maintain_v notary_n their_o original_a and_o office_n their_o use_n and_o institution_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n his_o journey_n into_o greece_n his_o passage_n through_o palestin_n and_o be_v ordain_v presbyter_n at_o caesarea_n demetrius_n of_o alexandria_n his_o envy_n and_o rage_n against_o he_o origen_n condemn_v in_o two_o synod_n at_o alexandria_n and_o one_o at_o rome_n the_o resignation_n of_o his_o catechetic_a school_n to_o heraclas_n heraclas_n who_o the_o story_n of_o his_o offering_n sacrifice_n the_o credit_n of_o this_o story_n question_v and_o why_o his_o departure_n from_o alexandria_n and_o fix_v at_o caesarea_n the_o eminency_n of_o his_o school_n there_o gregorius_n thaumaturgus_n his_o scholar_n his_o friendship_n with_o firmilian_a firmilian_a who_o the_o persecution_n under_o maximinus_n origen_n book_n write_v to_o the_o martyr_n his_o retirement_n whither_o he_o compare_v the_o version_n of_o the_o bible_n his_o tetrapla_n hexapla_fw-la and_o octapla_n what_o and_o how_o manage_v a_o specimen_fw-la give_v of_o they_o his_o second_o journey_n to_o athens_n his_o go_v to_o nicomedia_n and_o letter_n to_o africanus_n about_o the_o history_n of_o susanna_n his_o confutation_n of_o beryllus_n in_o arabia_n his_o answer_n to_o celsus_n celsus_n who_o origen_n letter_n to_o philip_n the_o emperor_n the_o vanity_n of_o make_v he_o a_o christian_n origen_n journey_n into_o arabia_n to_o refute_v heresy_n the_o helcesaitae_n who_o what_o their_o principle_n alexander_n miraculous_a election_n to_o the_o see_v of_o jerusalem_n his_o coadjntorship_n government_n suffering_n and_o martyrdom_n origen_n grievous_a suffering_n at_o tyre_n under_o the_o decian_a persecution_n his_o deliverance_n out_o of_o prison_n age_n and_o death_n his_o character_n his_o strict_a life_n his_o mighty_a zeal_n abstinence_n contempt_n of_o the_o world_n indefatigable_a diligence_n and_o patience_n note_v his_o natural_a part_n incomparable_a learning_n his_o book_n and_o their_o several_a class_n his_o stile_n what_o his_o unsound_a opinion_n the_o great_a outcry_n against_o he_o in_o all_o age_n the_o apology_n write_v in_o his_o behalf_n several_a thing_n note_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_n to_o extenuate_v the_o charge_n his_o assertion_n not_o dogmatical_a not_o intend_v for_o public_a view_n general_o such_o as_o be_v not_o determine_v by_o the_o church_n his_o book_n corrupt_v and_o by_o who_o his_o own_o complaint_n to_o that_o purpose_n the_o testimony_n of_o athanasius_n and_o theotimus_n and_o haymo_n in_o his_o vindication_n great_a error_n and_o mistake_v acknowledge_v what_o thing_n contribute_v to_o they_o his_o great_a kindness_n for_o the_o platonic_a principle_n s._n hierom_n moderate_a censure_n of_o he_o his_o repent_v of_o his_o rash_a proposition_n his_o write_n enumerate_v and_o what_o now_o extant_a pag._n 213._o the_o life_n of_o s._n babylas_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n his_o original_n obscure_v his_o education_n and_o accomplishment_n inquire_v into_o make_a bishop_n of_o antioch_n when_o antioch_n take_v by_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n recover_v by_o the_o roman_a emperor_n babylas_n his_o fidelity_n in_o his_o charge_n the_o decian_a persecution_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o severe_o urge_v by_o the_o emperor_n edict_n decius_n his_o come_n to_o antioch_n his_o attempt_n to_o break_v into_o the_o christian_a congregation_n babylas_n his_o bold_a resistance_n this_o apply_v to_o numerianus_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o mistake_n the_o like_a report_v of_o philip_n the_o emperor_n decius_n his_o bloody_a act_n relate_v by_o s._n chrysostom_n his_o rage_n against_o babylas_n and_o his_o examination_n of_o he_o the_o martyr_n resolute_a answer_n his_o imprisonment_n and_o hard_a usage_n the_o different_a account_n concern_v his_o death_n three_o youth_n his_o fellow-sufferer_n in_o vain_a attempt_v by_o the_o emperor_n their_o martyrdom_n first_o and_o why_o babylas_n behead_v his_o command_n that_o his_o chain_n shall_v be_v bury_v with_o he_o the_o translation_n of_o his_o body_n under_o constantius_n the_o great_a sweetness_n and_o pleasantness_n of_o the_o daphne_n apollo_n temple_n there_o s._n babylas_n his_o bone_n translate_v thither_o by_o gallus_n caesar_n the_o oracle_n immediate_o render_v dumb_a in_o vain_a consult_v by_o julian_n the_o confession_n of_o the_o daemon_n julian_n command_n for_o remove_v babylas_n his_o bone_n the_o martyr_n remain_v triumphant_o carry_v into_o the_o city_n the_o credit_n of_o this_o story_n sufficient_o attest_v the_o thing_n own_v by_o libanius_n and_o julian_n why_o such_o honour_n suffer_v to_o be_v do_v to_o the_o martyr_n julian_n afraid_a of_o a_o immediate_a vengeance_n his_o persecution_n against_o the_o christian_n at_o antioch_n the_o suffering_n of_o theodorus_n the_o temple_n of_o apollo_n fire_v from_o heaven_n pag._n 241._o the_o life_n of_o
help_n or_o benefit_n by_o the_o god_n a_o great_a argument_n as_o eusebius_n well_o urge_v of_o our_o saviour_n divine_a authority_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o doctrine_n for_o when_o say_v he_o a_o little_a before_o such_o number_n of_o fictitious_a deity_n flee_v at_o our_o lord_n aprearance_n who_o will_v not_o with_o admiration_n behold_v it_o as_o a_o uncontrollable_a demonstration_n of_o his_o true_o save_v and_o excellent_a religion_n whereby_o so_o many_o church_n and_o oratory_n through_o all_o the_o world_n both_o in_o city_n and_o village_n and_o even_o in_o the_o desert_n and_o solitude_n of_o the_o most_o barbarous_a nation_n have_v be_v erect_v and_o consecrate_v to_o the_o great_a creator_n and_o the_o only_a sovereign_n of_o the_o world_n when_o such_o multitude_n of_o book_n have_v be_v write_v contain_v the_o most_o incomparable_a rule_n and_o institution_n to_o form_n mankind_n to_o a_o life_n of_o the_o most_o perfect_a virtue_n and_o religion_n precept_n accommodate_v not_o to_o man_n only_o but_o to_o woman_n and_o child_n when_o he_o shall_v see_v that_o the_o oracle_n and_o divination_n of_o the_o daemon_n be_v cease_v and_o go_v and_o that_o the_o divine_a and_o evangelical_n virtue_n of_o our_o saviour_n no_o soon_o visit_v mankind_n but_o they_o begin_v to_o leave_v off_o their_o wild_a and_o frantic_a way_n of_o worship_n and_o to_o abhor_v those_o humane_a sacrifice_n many_o time_n of_o their_o dear_a relation_n wherewith_o they_o have_v be_v wont_a to_o propitiate_v and_o atone_v their_o bloody_a and_o merciless_a daemon_n and_o into_o which_o their_o wise_a and_o great_a man_n have_v be_v bewitch_v and_o seduce_v i_o add_v no_o more_o but_o s._n chrysostoms_n 1._o chrysostoms_n orat._n iii_o adv_n judaeos_n p._n 420._o tom._n 1._o challenge_n judge_v now_o with_o i_o o_o thou_o incredulous_a jew_n and_o learn_v the_o excellency_n of_o the_o truth_n what_o impostor_n ever_o gather_v to_o himself_o so_o many_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n and_o propagate_v his_o worship_n from_o one_o end_n of_o it_o to_o the_o other_o and_o subdue_v so_o many_o subject_n to_o his_o crown_n even_o when_o thousand_o of_o impediment_n lay_v in_o the_o way_n to_o hinder_v he_o certain_o no_o man_n a_o plain_a evidence_n that_o christ_n be_v no_o impostor_n but_o a_o saviour_n and_o benefactor_n and_o the_o author_n of_o our_o life_n and_o happiness_n xii_o we_o have_v see_v with_o what_o a_o mighty_a success_n christianity_n display_v its_o banner_n over_o the_o world_n let_v we_o next_o consider_v what_o it_o be_v that_o contribute_v to_o so_o vast_a a_o increase_n and_o propagation_n of_o it_o and_o here_o not_o to_o insist_v upon_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o divine_a providence_n which_o do_v immediate_o superintend_v its_o prosperity_n and_o welfare_n nor_o upon_o the_o intrinsic_n excellency_n of_o the_o religion_n itself_o which_o carry_v essential_a character_n of_o divinity_n upon_o it_o sufficient_a to_o recommend_v it_o to_o every_o wise_a and_o good_a man_n there_o be_v five_o thing_n among_o other_o that_o do_v especial_o conduce_v to_o make_v way_n for_o it_o the_o miraculous_a power_n then_o resident_a in_o the_o church_n the_o great_a learning_n and_o ability_n of_o its_o champion_n and_o defender_n the_o indefatigable_a industry_n use_v in_o propagate_a of_o it_o the_o incomparable_a life_n of_o its_o professor_n and_o their_o patience_n and_o constancy_n under_o suffering_n it_o be_v not_o the_o least_o mean_n that_o procure_v the_o christian_a religion_n a_o just_a veneration_n from_o the_o world_n the_o miraculous_a attestation_n that_o be_v give_v to_o it_o i_o shall_v not_o here_o concern_v myself_o to_o show_v that_o miracle_n true_o and_o public_o wrought_v be_v the_o high_a external_a evidence_n that_o can_v be_v give_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o religion_n which_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o confirm_v the_o force_n of_o the_o argument_n be_v sufficient_o plead_v by_o the_o christian_a apologist_n that_o such_o miraculous_a power_n be_v then_o ordinary_a in_o the_o church_n we_o have_v the_o concurrent_a testimony_n of_o all_o the_o first_o writer_n of_o it_o justin_n martyr_n 45._o martyr_n apol._n i._o p._n 45._o tell_v the_o emperor_n and_o the_o senate_n that_o our_o lord_n be_v bear_v for_o the_o subversion_n of_o the_o daemon_n which_o they_o may_v know_v from_o the_o very_a thing_n do_v in_o their_o sight_n for_o that_o very_o many_o who_o have_v be_v vex_v and_o possess_v by_o daemon_n throughout_o the_o world_n and_o in_o this_o very_a city_n of_o they_o who_o all_o their_o exorcist_n and_o conjurer_n be_v not_o able_a to_o relieve_v have_v be_v cure_v by_o several_a christian_n through_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n that_o be_v crucify_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n and_o that_o at_o this_o very_a time_n they_o still_o cure_v they_o disarm_v and_o expel_v the_o daemon_n out_o of_o those_o who_o they_o have_v possess_v the_o same_o he_o affirm_v in_o his_o discourse_n with_o trypho_n 302._o trypho_n dial._n cum_fw-la tryph._n p._n 24●_n &_o p._n 302._o the_o jew_n more_o than_o once_o that_o the_o devil_n tremble_v and_o stand_v in_o awe_n of_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o this_o day_n be_v adjure_v by_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n crucify_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n the_o procurator_n of_o judaea_n they_o be_v obedient_a to_o christian_n irenaeus_n 218._o irenaeus_n adu._n haeres_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 56._o p._n 215._o c._n 57_o p._n 218._o assure_v we_o that_o in_o his_o time_n the_o christian_n enable_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n raise_v the_o dead_a eject_v daemon_n and_o unclean_a spirit_n the_o person_n so_o dispossess_v come_v over_o to_o the_o church_n other_o have_v vision_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n other_o by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n heal_v the_o sick_a and_o restore_v they_o to_o perfect_a health_n but_o i_o be_o not_o able_a say_v he_o to_o reckon_v up_o the_o number_n of_o those_o gift_n which_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n receive_v from_o god_n do_v every_o day_n free_o exercise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n crucify_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n to_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o world_n tertullian_n 22._o tertullian_n apol._n c._n 23._o p._n 22._o challenge_v the_o roman_a governor_n to_o let_v any_o possess_a person_n be_v bring_v before_o their_o own_o tribunal_n and_o they_o shall_v see_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v command_v to_o speak_v by_o any_o christian_a shall_v as_o true_o confess_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o devil_n as_o at_o other_o time_n he_o false_o boast_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o god_n and_o he_o tell_v scapula_n 6●_n scapula_n ad_fw-la scap._n c._n 2._o p._n 6●_n that_o they_o reject_v disgrace_v and_o expel_v daemon_n every_o day_n as_o most_o can_v bear_v they_o witness_v origen_n 80._o origen_n contr._n cell_n l._n 2._o p._n 80._o bid_v celsus_n take_v notice_n that_o whatever_o he_o may_v think_v of_o the_o report_n which_o the_o gospel_n make_v concern_v our_o saviour_n yet_o that_o it_o be_v the_o great_a and_o magnificent_a work_n of_o jesus_n by_o his_o name_n to_o heal_v even_o to_o this_o day_n who_o god_n please_v that_o he_o 124._o he_o ib._n l._n 3._o p._n 124._o himself_o have_v see_v many_o who_o by_o have_v the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n call_v over_o they_o have_v be_v deliver_v from_o the_o great_a evil_n frenzy_n and_o madness_n and_o infinite_a other_o distemper_n which_o neither_o man_n nor_o devil_n have_v be_v able_a to_o cure_v what_o influence_n these_o miraculous_a effect_n have_v upon_o the_o world_n he_o let_v we_o know_v elsewhere_o the_o apostle_n of_o our_o lord_n say_v 34._o say_v lib._n 1._o p._n 34._o he_o without_o these_o miraculous_a power_n will_v never_o have_v be_v able_a to_o have_v move_v their_o auditor_n nor_o persuade_v they_o to_o desert_n the_o institution_n of_o their_o country_n and_o to_o embrace_v their_o new_a doctrine_n and_o have_v once_o embrace_v it_o to_o defend_v it_o even_o to_o death_n in_o defiance_n of_o the_o great_a danger_n yea_o even_o to_o this_o day_n the_o footstep_n of_o that_o holy_a spirit_n which_o appear_v in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o dove_n be_v preserve_v among_o the_o christian_n they_o exorcise_v daemon_n perform_v many_o cure_n and_o according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n foresee_v and_o foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v at_o which_o though_o celsus_n and_o his_o personate_a jew_n may_v laugh_v yet_o i_o affirm_v further_o that_o many_o even_o against_o their_o inclination_n have_v be_v bring_v over_o to_o the_o christian_a religion_n their_o former_a opposition_n of_o it_o be_v sudden_o change_v into_o a_o resolute_a maintain_n of_o it_o unto_o death_n after_o they_o have_v have_v vision_n communicate_v to_o they_o several_a of_o which_o nature_n we_o ourselves_o have_v see_v and_o shall_v we_o only_o reckon_v up_o those_o at_o which_o we_o
haughty_a and_o its_o face_n full_a of_o ancient_a wrinkle_n of_o which_o 459._o which_o lib._n 5._o cap._n 1._o p._n 459._o lactantius_n long_o since_o give_v this_o censure_n that_o though_o he_o himself_o be_v skill_v in_o all_o point_n of_o learning_n yet_o his_o stile_n be_v rugged_a and_o uneasy_a and_o very_o obscure_a as_o indeed_o it_o require_v a_o very_a attentive_a and_o diligent_a a_o sharp_a and_o sagacious_a understanding_n yet_o be_v it_o lofty_a and_o masculine_a and_o carry_v a_o kind_n of_o majestic_a eloquence_n along_o with_o it_o that_o give_v a_o pleasant_a relish_n to_o the_o judicious_a and_o inquisitive_a reader_n it_o be_v deep_o tincture_v with_o the_o african_a dialect_n and_o owe_v not_o a_o little_a of_o its_o perplexedness_n and_o obscurity_n to_o his_o converse_v so_o much_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o greek_n who_o form_n and_o idiom_n he_o have_v so_o make_v his_o own_o that_o they_o natural_o flow_v into_o his_o pen_n and_o how_o great_a a_o master_n he_o be_v of_o that_o tongue_n be_v plain_a in_o that_o himself_o 104_o himself_o de_fw-fr baptism_n c._n 15._o p._n 230._o de_fw-fr coron_n c._n 6._o p._n 104_o tell_v we_o he_o write_v a_o book_n concern_v baptism_n and_o some_o other_o in_o greek_a which_o can_v not_o but_o exceed_o vitiate_v and_o infect_v his_o native_a stile_n and_o render_v it_o less_o smooth_a elegant_a and_o delightful_a as_o we_o see_v in_o ammianus_n marcellinus_n who_o be_v a_o greek_a bear_v write_v his_o roman_a history_n in_o latin_a in_o a_o stile_n rough_a and_o unpleasant_a and_o next_o door_n to_o barbarous_a beside_o what_o be_v in_o itself_o obscure_a and_o uneven_a become_v infinite_o worse_o by_o the_o ignorance_n of_o succeee_a age_n who_o change_v what_o they_o do_v not_o understand_v and_o crowd_v in_o spurious_a word_n in_o the_o room_n of_o those_o which_o be_v proper_a and_o natural_a till_o they_o have_v make_v it_o look_v like_o quite_o another_o thing_n then_o what_o it_o be_v when_o it_o first_o come_v from_o under_o the_o hand_n of_o its_o author_n fourteen_o his_o error_n and_o unsound_a opinion_n be_v frequent_o note_v by_o s._n augustin_n and_o the_o ancient_n not_o to_o mention_v late_a censor_n and_o pamelius_n have_v reduce_v his_o paradox_n to_o thirty_o one_o which_o together_o with_o their_o explication_n and_o antidote_n he_o have_v prefix_v before_o the_o edition_n of_o his_o work_n that_o of_o montanus_n his_o be_v the_o paraclete_n we_o note_v before_o and_o for_o other_o thing_n relate_v to_o that_o sect_n they_o be_v rather_o matter_n concern_v order_n and_o discipline_n than_o article_n and_o point_n of_o faith_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o he_o have_v some_o unwarrantable_a notion_n common_a with_o other_o writer_n of_o those_o time_n and_o some_o more_o peculiar_a to_o himself_o but_o he_o live_v in_o a_o age_n when_o the_o faith_n be_v yet_o green_a and_o tender_a when_o the_o church_n have_v not_o public_o and_o solemn_o define_v thing_n by_o explicit_a article_n and_o nice_a proposition_n when_o the_o philosophy_n of_o the_o school_n be_v main_o predominant_a and_o man_n run_v immediate_o from_o the_o stoa_n and_o the_o academy_n to_o the_o church_n when_o a_o great_a latitude_n of_o opine_v be_v indulge_v and_o good_a man_n be_v infinite_o more_o solicitous_a about_o piety_n and_o a_o good_a life_n then_o about_o mode_n of_o speech_n and_o how_o to_o express_v every_o thing_n so_o critical_o and_o exact_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v liable_a to_o a_o severe_a scrutiny_n and_o examination_n his_o write_n genuine_a apologeticus_n ad_fw-la nationes_fw-la libri_fw-la ii_o de_fw-fr testimonio_fw-la animae_fw-la ad_fw-la scapulam_fw-la de_fw-fr spectaculis_fw-la de_fw-fr idololatria_fw-la de_fw-fr corona_n de_fw-fr pallio_fw-la de_fw-fr poenitentia_fw-la de_fw-fr oratione_fw-la ad_fw-la martyras_n de_fw-fr patientia_fw-la de_fw-fr cultu_fw-la foeminarum_fw-la lib._n ii_o ad_fw-la vxorem_fw-la lib._n ii_o de_fw-fr virginibus_fw-la velandis_fw-la adversus_fw-la judaeos_fw-la de_fw-fr praescriptione_n haereticorum_fw-la de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la adversus_fw-la hermogenem_fw-la adversus_fw-la valentinianos_n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la de_fw-fr carne_n christi_fw-la de_fw-fr resurrectione_n carnis_fw-la adversus_fw-la marcionem_fw-la lib._n v._n scorpiace_n adversus_fw-la praxeam_fw-la libri_fw-la post_fw-la lapsum_fw-la in_o montanismum_fw-la scripti_fw-la de_fw-fr exhortatione_n castitatis_fw-la de_fw-fr monogamia_fw-la de_fw-fr fuga_fw-la in_o persecutione_n de_fw-fr jejuniis_fw-la de_fw-fr pudicitia_n supposititious_a poemata_fw-la adversus_fw-la marcionem_fw-la lib._n v._n de_fw-fr judicio_fw-la domini_fw-la genesis_n sodoma_n not_o extant_a de_fw-fr paradiso_n de_fw-fr spe_fw-la fidelium_fw-la de_fw-fr ecstasi_fw-la adversus_fw-la apollonium_n adversus_fw-la apellecianos_fw-la de_fw-fr vestibus_fw-la aaron_n de_fw-fr censu_fw-la animae_fw-la graece_fw-la de_fw-fr corona_n de_fw-fr virginibus_fw-la velandis_fw-la de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la the_o end_n of_o tertullian_n be_v life_n the_o life_n of_o origen_n presbyter_n catechist_n of_o alexandria_n michael_n burgher_n sculpsit_fw-la origen_n origen_n where_o and_o when_o bear_v several_a conjecture_n about_o the_o original_n of_o his_o name_n his_o father_n who_o his_o juvenile_a education_n and_o great_a towardliness_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n his_o philosophical_a study_n under_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n his_o institution_n under_o ammonius_n ammonius_n who_o his_o fame_n and_o excellency_n confess_v by_o the_o gentile_a philosopher_n another_o origen_n his_o contemporary_a these_o two_o heedless_o confound_v his_o father_n martyrdom_n and_o the_o confiscation_n of_o his_o estate_n origen_n be_v resolute_a encouragement_n of_o his_o father_n his_o own_o passionate_a desire_n of_o martyrdom_n his_o maintenance_n by_o a_o honourable_a matron_n of_o alexandria_n his_o zeal_n against_o heretic_n his_o set_n up_o a_o private_a school_n his_o succeed_v clemens_n in_o the_o catechetic_a school_fw-mi at_o eighteen_o year_n of_o age._n the_o frequency_n of_o his_o auditor_n many_o of_o they_o martyr_n for_o the_o faith_n origen_n be_v resolution_n in_o attend_v upon_o the_o martyr_n his_o danger_n his_o courageous_a act_n at_o the_o temple_n of_o serapis_n his_o emasculate_v himself_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o the_o eminent_a chastity_n of_o those_o primitive_a time_n origen_n be_v journey_n to_o rome_n and_o return_v to_o alexandria_n his_o take_n in_o a_o colleague_n into_o the_o catechetic_a office_n his_o learning_n the_o hebrew_n tongue_n the_o prudent_a method_n of_o his_o teach_v ambrose_n convert_v who_o he_o be_v his_o great_a intimacy_n with_o origen_n origen_n send_v for_o by_o the_o governor_n of_o arabia_n his_o journey_n into_o palestin_n and_o teach_v at_o caesarea_n remand_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n alexander_n severus_n his_o excellent_a virtue_n and_o kindness_n for_o the_o christian_a religion_n origen_n send_v for_o by_o the_o empress_n mammaea_n to_o antioch_n he_o begin_v to_o write_v his_o commentary_n how_o many_o notary_n and_o transcriber_n employ_v and_o by_o who_o maintain_v notary_n their_o original_a and_o office_n their_o use_n and_o institution_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n his_o journey_n into_o greece_n his_o passage_n through_o palestin_n and_o be_v ordain_v presbyter_n at_o caesarea_n demetrius_n of_o alexandria_n his_o envy_n and_o rage_n against_o he_o origen_n condemn_v in_o two_o synod_n at_o alexandria_n and_o one_o at_o rome_n the_o resignation_n of_o his_o catechetic_a school_n to_o heraclas_n heraclas_n who_o the_o story_n of_o his_o offering_n sacrifice_n the_o credit_n of_o this_o story_n question_v and_o why_o his_o departure_n from_o alexandria_n and_o fix_v at_o caesarea_n the_o eminency_n of_o his_o school_n there_o gregorius_n thaumaturgus_n his_o scholar_n his_o friendship_n with_o firmilian_a firmilian_a who_o the_o persecution_n under_o maximinus_n origen_n be_v book_n write_v to_o the_o martyr_n his_o retirement_n whither_o his_o compare_v the_o version_n of_o the_o bible_n his_o tetrapla_n hexapla_fw-la and_o octapla_n what_o and_o how_o manage_v a_o spe●imen_fw-la give_v of_o they_o his_o second_o journey_n to_o athens_n his_o go_v to_o nicomedia_n and_o letter_n to_o africanus_n about_o the_o history_n of_o susanna_n his_o confutation_n of_o beryllus_n in_o arabia_n his_o answer_n to_o celsus_n celsus_n who_o origen_n letter_n to_o philip_n the_o emperor_n the_o vanity_n of_o make_v he_o a_o christian_n origen_n be_v journey_n into_o arabia_n to_o refute_v heresy_n the_o helcesaitae_n who_o what_o their_o principle_n alexander_n be_v miraculous_a election_n to_o the_o see_v of_o jerusalem_n his_o coadjutor-ship_n government_n suffering_n and_o martyrdom_n origen_n be_v grievous_a suffering_n at_o tyre_n under_o the_o decian_a persecution_n his_o deliverance_n out_o of_o prison_n age_n and_o death_n his_o character_n his_o strict_a life_n his_o mighty_a zeal_n abstinence_n contempt_n of_o the_o world_n indefatigable_a diligence_n and_o patience_n note_v his_o natural_a part_n incomparable_a learning_n his_o book_n and_o their_o several_a class_n his_o stile_n what_o his_o unsound_a opinion_n the_o great_a outcry_n against_o he_o in_o all_o age_n
vit._n &_o script_n euseb_n and_o as_o valesius_fw-la conjecture_n some_o year_n after_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a though_o when_o not_o long_o before_o he_o express_o affirm_v that_o history_n to_o have_v be_v write_v before_o the_o nicene_n synod_n how_o he_o can_v herein_o be_v excuse_v from_o a_o palpable_a contradiction_n i_o can_v imagine_v it_o be_v true_a eusebius_n take_v no_o notice_n of_o that_o council_n but_o that_o may_v be_v partly_o because_o he_o design_v to_o end_v in_o that_o joyful_a and_o prosperous_a scene_n of_o thing_n which_o constantine_n restore_v to_o the_o church_n as_o he_o himself_o plain_o intimate_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o history_n which_o he_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o discompose_v with_o the_o controversy_n and_o contention_n of_o that_o synod_n according_a to_o the_o humour_n of_o all_o historian_n who_o delight_n to_o shut_v up_o their_o history_n with_o some_o happy_a and_o successful_a period_n and_o partly_o because_o he_o intend_v to_o give_v some_o account_n of_o the_o affair_n of_o that_o council_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o life_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a the_o material_n wherewith_o he_o be_v furnish_v for_o this_o great_a undertake_n which_o he_o complain_v be_v very_o small_a and_o inconsiderable_a be_v beside_o hegesippus_n his_o commentary_n then_o extant_a africanus_n his_o chronology_n the_o book_n and_o write_n of_o several_a father_n the_o record_n of_o particular_a city_n ecclesiastical_a epistle_n write_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o those_o time_n and_o keep_v in_o the_o archive_v of_o their_o several_a church_n especial_o that_o famous_a library_n at_o jerusalem_n erect_v by_o alexander_n bishop_n of_o that_o place_n but_o chief_o the_o act_n of_o the_o martyr_n which_o in_o those_o time_n be_v take_v at_o large_a with_o great_a care_n and_o accuracy_n these_o at_o least_o a_o great_a many_o of_o they_o eusebius_n collect_v into_o one_o volume_n under_o the_o title_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o collection_n of_o the_o ancient_a martyrdom_n which_o he_o refer_v to_o at_o every_o turn_n beside_o a_o particular_a narrative_n which_o he_o write_v still_o extant_a as_o a_o appendage_n to_o the_o eight_o book_n of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n concern_v the_o martyr_n that_o suffer_v in_o palestin_n a_o great_a part_n of_o these_o act_n by_o the_o negligence_n and_o unfaithfulness_n of_o succeed_a time_n be_v interpolate_v and_o corrupt_v especial_o in_o the_o dark_a and_o more_o undiscerning_a age_n when_o superstition_n have_v overspread_v the_o church_n and_o when_o ignorance_n and_o interest_n conspire_v to_o fill_v the_o world_n with_o idle_a and_o improbable_a story_n and_o man_n take_v what_o liberty_n they_o please_v in_o vent_v the_o issue_n of_o their_o own_o brain_n insomuch_o that_o some_o of_o the_o more_o wise_a and_o moderate_a even_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n have_v complain_v not_o without_o a_o just_a resentment_n and_o indignation_n that_o laertius_n have_v write_v the_o life_n of_o philosopher_n with_o more_o truth_n and_o chasteness_n than_o many_o have_v do_v the_o life_n of_o the_o saint_n upon_o this_o account_n a_o great_a and_o general_a outcry_n have_v be_v make_v against_o simeon_n metaphrastes_n as_o the_o father_n of_o incredible_a legend_n and_o one_o that_o have_v notorious_o impose_v upon_o the_o world_n by_o the_o most_o fabulous_a report_n nay_o some_o to_o reflect_v the_o more_o disgrace_n upon_o he_o have_v represent_v he_o as_o a_o petty_a schoolmaster_n a_o charge_n in_o my_o mind_n rash_a and_o inconsiderate_a and_o in_o a_o great_a measure_n groundless_a and_o uncharitable_a he_o be_v a_o person_n of_o very_a considerable_a birth_n and_o fortune_n advance_v to_o the_o high_a honour_n and_o office_n one_o of_o the_o premier_n minister_n of_o state_n and_o as_o be_v probable_a great_a chancellor_n to_o the_o emperor_n of_o constantinople_n learned_a and_o eloquent_a above_o the_o common_a standard_n and_o who_o by_o the_o persuasion_n not_o only_o of_o some_o great_a one_o of_o that_o time_n he_o flourish_v under_o leo_n the_o wise_a about_o the_o year_n dcccc_n but_o principal_o write_v under_o the_o reign_n of_o his_o successor_n but_o of_o the_o emperor_n himself_o be_v prevail_v with_o to_o reduce_v the_o life_n of_o the_o saint_n into_o order_n to_o which_o end_n by_o his_o own_o infinite_a labour_n and_o the_o no_o less_o expense_n of_o the_o emperor_n he_o ransack_v the_o library_n of_o the_o empire_n till_o he_o have_v amass_v a_o vast_a heap_n of_o volume_n the_o more_o ancient_a act_n he_o pass_v without_o any_o considerable_a alteration_n more_o than_o the_o correct_v they_o by_o a_o collation_n of_o several_a copy_n and_o the_o enlarge_n some_o circumstance_n to_o render_v they_o more_o plain_a and_o easy_a as_o appear_v by_o compare_v some_o that_o be_v extant_a at_o this_o day_n where_o life_n be_v confuse_v and_o immethodical_a or_o write_v in_o a_o stile_n rude_a and_o barbarous_a he_o digest_v the_o history_n into_o order_n and_o clothe_v it_o in_o more_o polite_a and_o elegant_a language_n other_o that_o be_v defective_a in_o neither_o he_o leave_v as_o they_o be_v and_o give_v they_o place_n among_o his_o own_o so_o that_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n for_o so_o severe_a a_o censure_n unless_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o take_v his_o account_n of_o thing_n not_o from_o the_o write_n of_o those_o that_o have_v go_v before_o he_o but_o forge_v they_o of_o his_o own_o head_n not_o to_o say_v that_o thing_n have_v be_v make_v much_o worse_o by_o translation_n seldom_o appear_v in_o any_o but_o the_o dress_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o that_o many_o life_n be_v lay_v at_o his_o door_n of_o which_o he_o never_o be_v the_o father_n it_o be_v usual_a with_o some_o when_o they_o meet_v with_o the_o life_n of_o a_o saint_n the_o author_n whereof_o they_o know_v not_o present_o to_o fasten_v it_o upon_o metaphrastes_n but_o to_o return_v to_o eusebius_n from_o who_o we_o have_v digress_v his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n the_o almost_o only_o remain_v record_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n deserve_v a_o just_a esteem_n and_o veneration_n without_o which_o those_o very_a fragment_n of_o antiquity_n have_v be_v lose_v which_o by_o this_o mean_n have_v escape_v the_o common_a shipwreck_n and_o indeed_o s._n hierom_n nicephorus_n and_o the_o rest_n do_v not_o only_o build_v upon_o his_o foundation_n but_o almost_o entire_o derive_v their_o material_n from_o he_o as_o for_o socrates_n sozomen_n theodorit_fw-fr and_o the_o late_a historian_n they_o relate_v to_o time_n without_o the_o limit_n of_o my_o present_a business_n general_o convey_v down_o little_o more_o than_o the_o history_n of_o their_o own_o time_n the_o church_n history_n of_o those_o more_o early_a age_n be_v either_o quite_o neglect_v or_o very_o negligent_o manage_v the_o first_o that_o to_o any_o purpose_n break_v the_o ice_n after_o the_o reformation_n be_v the_o centuriator_n of_o magdeburg_n a_o combination_n of_o learned_a and_o industrious_a man_n the_o chief_a of_o who_o be_v john_n wigandus_n matth._n judex_n basilius_n faber_n andreas_n corvinus_n but_o especial_o matth._n flaccius_n illyricus_n who_o be_v the_o very_a soul_n of_o the_o undertake_n they_o set_v themselves_o to_o traverse_v the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a monument_n of_o the_o church_n collect_v whatever_o make_v to_o their_o purpose_n which_o with_o indefatigable_a pain_n they_o digest_v into_o a_o ecclesiastic_a history_n this_o they_o divide_v into_o century_n and_o each_o century_n into_o fifteen_o chapter_n into_o each_o of_o which_o as_o into_o its_o proper_a classis_fw-la and_o repository_n they_o reduce_v whatever_o concern_v the_o propagation_n of_o religion_n the_o peace_n or_o persecution_n of_o the_o christian_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o heresy_n that_o arise_v in_o it_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n the_o government_n schism_n council_n bishop_n and_o person_n note_v either_o for_o religion_n or_o learning_n heretic_n martyr_n miracle_n the_o state_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o religion_n of_o they_o that_o be_v without_o and_o the_o political_a revolution_n of_o that_o age._n a_o method_n accurate_a and_o useful_a and_o which_o administer_v to_o a_o very_a distinct_a and_o particular_a understanding_n the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n the_o four_o first_o century_n be_v finish_v in_o the_o city_n of_o magdeburg_n the_o rest_n elsewhere_o a_o work_n of_o prodigious_a diligence_n and_o singular_a use_n true_a it_o be_v that_o it_o labour_v under_o some_o fault_n and_o imperfection_n and_o be_v chargeable_a with_o considerable_a error_n and_o mistake_n and_o no_o wonder_n for_o beside_o that_o the_o person_n themselves_o may_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v sometime_o betray_v into_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o heat_n and_o contention_n of_o those_o time_n it_o be_v the_o first_o attempt_n in_o this_o kind_n and_o
either_o because_o it_o be_v their_o humour_n to_o lay_v their_o own_o child_n at_o other_o man_n door_n or_o to_o decline_v the_o censure_n which_o the_o notion_n they_o publish_v be_v likely_a to_o expose_v they_o to_o or_o principal_o to_o conciliate_v the_o great_a esteem_n and_o value_n for_o they_o by_o thrust_v they_o forth_o under_o the_o name_n of_o those_o for_o who_o the_o world_n have_v a_o just_a regard_n and_o veneration_n as_o for_o mounseur_fw-fr dailles_fw-fr conjecture_n 221._o de_fw-fr script_n diony_n c._n 39_o p._n 221._o that_o the_o reason_n why_o several_a learned_a volume_n be_v write_v and_o fasten_v upon_o the_o father_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n be_v to_o vindicate_v they_o from_o that_o common_a imputation_n of_o the_o gentile_n who_o be_v wont_a to_o charge_v the_o christian_n for_o be_v a_o rude_a and_o illiterate_a generation_n who_o book_n be_v stuff_v with_o nothing_o but_o plain_a simple_a doctrine_n and_o who_o be_v stranger_n to_o all_o kind_n of_o learning_n and_o eloquence_n that_o to_o obviate_v this_o objection_n several_a take_v upon_o they_o to_o compose_v book_n full_a of_o learning_n and_o philosophy_n which_o they_o publish_v under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o first_o preacher_n and_o propagater_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o that_o this_o particular_o be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o recognition_n ascribe_v to_o clemens_n and_o the_o write_n attribute_v to_o dionysius_n the_o first_o i_o grant_v very_o likely_a and_o rational_a the_o recognition_n be_v probable_o write_v about_o the_o second_o century_n when_o as_o appear_v from_o celsus_n his_o book_n against_o the_o christian_n this_o objection_n be_v most_o rife_o and_o when_o few_o learned_a discourse_n have_v be_v publish_v by_o they_o but_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n allow_v it_o as_o to_o the_o second_o dionysius_n his_o work_n be_v write_v long_o after_o the_o learning_n and_o eloquence_n of_o the_o christian_n have_v sufficient_o approve_v itself_o to_o the_o world_n to_o the_o shame_n and_o conviction_n the_o envy_n and_o admiration_n of_o its_o great_a enemy_n and_o there_o be_v far_o less_o need_n of_o they_o for_o this_o purpose_n if_o it_o be_v true_a what_o daille_n himself_o so_o confident_o assert_n and_o so_o earnest_o contend_v for_o that_o they_o be_v not_o write_v till_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o six_o century_n about_o the_o year_n dxx_o when_o there_o be_v few_o learned_a gentile_n leave_v to_o make_v this_o objection_n heathenism_n be_v almost_o whole_o banish_v out_o of_o the_o civilise_a world_n xvi_o but_o whoever_o be_v their_o genuine_a parent_n or_o upon_o what_o account_n soever_o he_o write_v they_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o a_o mystical_a and_o unintelligible_a divinity_n among_o christian_n and_o that_o hence_o proceed_v all_o those_o wild_a rosicrucean_n notion_n which_o some_o man_n be_v so_o fond_a of_o and_o the_o life_n and_o practice_n whereof_o they_o cry_v up_o as_o the_o very_a soul_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o christian_a state_n and_o that_o this_o author_n do_v immediate_o minister_v to_o this_o design_n let_v the_o reader_n judge_v by_o one_o instance_n and_o i_o assure_v he_o it_o be_v none_o of_o the_o most_o obscure_a and_o intricate_a passage_n in_o these_o book_n i_o have_v set_v it_o down_o in_o its_o own_o language_n as_o well_o as_o we_o not_o be_v confident_a of_o my_o own_o version_n though_o express_v word_n for_o word_n for_o i_o pretend_v to_o no_o great_a faculty_n in_o translate_n what_o i_o do_v not_o understand_v thus_o than_o he_o discourse_v concern_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n 238._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d diony_n de_fw-fr divin_n nomin_v cap._n 7._o p._n 238._o god_n say_v he_o be_v know_v in_o all_o thing_n and_o without_o all_o thing_n he_o be_v know_v by_o knowledge_n and_o by_o ignorance_n there_o be_v both_o a_o cogitation_n of_o he_o and_o a_o word_n and_o a_o science_n and_o a_o touch_n and_o a_o sense_n and_o a_o opinion_n and_o a_o imagination_n and_o a_o name_n and_o all_o other_o thing_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v neither_o thought_n nor_o speak_v nor_o name_v he_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v nor_o be_v he_o know_v in_o any_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v he_o be_v both_o all_o thing_n in_o all_o and_o nothing_o in_o nothing_o out_o of_o all_o thing_n he_o be_v know_v to_o all_o and_o out_o of_o nothing_o to_o nothing_o these_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o we_o right_o discourse_v concern_v god_n and_o this_o again_o be_v the_o most_o divine_a knowledge_n of_o god_n that_o which_o be_v know_v by_o ignorance_n according_a to_o the_o union_n that_o be_v above_o understanding_n when_o the_o mind_n get_v at_o a_o distance_n from_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v and_o have_v dismiss_v itself_o be_v unite_v to_o those_o super-illustrious_a beam_n from_o whence_o and_o where_o it_o be_v enlighten_v in_o the_o unfathomable_a depth_n of_o wisdom_n more_o of_o this_o and_o the_o like_a stuff_n be_v plentiful_o scatter_v up_o and_o down_o these_o book_n and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o mystical_a and_o profound_a enough_o i_o know_v not_o what_o be_v and_o which_o certain_o any_o man_n but_o one_o well_o verse_v in_o this_o sort_n of_o theology_n will_v look_v upon_o as_o a_o strange_a jargon_n of_o non_fw-la sense_n and_o contradiction_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o height_n of_o devotion_n and_o piety_n which_o some_o man_n earnest_o press_v after_o and_o wherein_o they_o glory_n as_o if_o a_o man_n can_v not_o true_o understand_v the_o mystery_n of_o religion_n till_o he_o have_v resign_v his_o reason_n nor_o be_v a_o christian_n without_o first_o become_v a_o enthusiast_n nor_o be_v able_a to_o speak_v sense_n unless_o in_o a_o language_n which_o none_o can_v understand_v write_n false_o attribute_v to_o he_o de_fw-fr coelesti_fw-la hierarchia_fw-la lib._n i._n de_fw-fr divinis_fw-la nominibus_fw-la i._o de_fw-fr ecclesiastica_fw-la hierarchia_fw-la i._o de_fw-fr mystica_fw-la theologia_n i._o epistolae_fw-la ad_fw-la caium_fw-la iv_o ad_fw-la dorotheum_n i._n ad_fw-la sosipatrum_fw-la epistola_fw-la i._o ad_fw-la polycarpum_fw-la i._o ad_fw-la demophilum_fw-la i._o ad_fw-la titum_fw-la i._o ad_fw-la joannem_fw-la evangelistam_fw-la i._o ad_fw-la apollophanem_fw-la i._o the_o end_n of_o s._n dionysius_n life_n the_o life_n of_o s._n clemens_n bishop_n of_o rome_n michael_n burgher_n delineavit_fw-la et_fw-la sculpsit_fw-la s._n clemens_n romanus_n his_o birthplace_n his_o parent_n kindred_n education_n and_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n note_v out_o of_o the_o book_n extant_a under_o his_o name_n his_o relation_n to_o the_o imperial_a family_n show_v to_o be_v a_o mistake_n his_o be_v make_v bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o great_a confusion_n about_o the_o first_o bishop_n of_o that_o see_n a_o probable_a account_n endeavour_v concern_v the_o order_n of_o s._n clemens_n his_o succession_n and_o the_o reconcile_n it_o with_o the_o time_n of_o the_o other_o bishop_n what_o account_v give_v of_o he_o in_o the_o ancient_a epistle_n to_o s._n james_n clemens_n his_o appoint_v notary_n to_o write_v the_o act_n of_o the_o martyr_n and_o dispatch_a messenger_n to_o propagate_v the_o gospel_n the_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n and_o clemens_n his_o epistle_n to_o that_o church_n a_o enquiry_n into_o the_o time_n when_o that_o epistle_n be_v write_v the_o persecution_n under_o trajan_n his_o proceed_n against_o the_o heteriae_n a_o short_a relation_n of_o s._n clemens_n his_o trouble_n out_o of_o simeon_n metaphrastes_n his_o banishment_n to_o cherson_n damnatio_fw-la ad_fw-la metalla_fw-la what_o the_o great_a success_n of_o his_o ministry_n in_o the_o place_n of_o his_o exile_n s._n clemens_n his_o martyrdom_n and_o the_o kind_n of_o it_o the_o anniversary_n miracle_n report_v on_o the_o day_n of_o his_o solemnity_n the_o time_n of_o his_o martyrdom_n his_o genuine_a write_n his_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o commendation_n give_v of_o it_o by_o the_o ancient_n it_o be_v style_n and_o character_n the_o great_a modesty_n and_o humility_n that_o appear_v in_o it_o the_o fragment_n of_o his_o second_o epistle_n supposititious_a write_n the_o recognition_n their_o several_a title_n and_o different_a edition_n their_o antiquity_n what_o a_o conjecture_n concern_v the_o author_n of_o they_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o ancient_n concern_v the_o corrupt_a of_o they_o consider_v the_o epistle_n to_o s._n james_n i._o it_o make_v not_o a_o little_a for_o the_o honour_n of_o this_o venerable_a apostolical_a man_n for_o of_o he_o all_o antiquity_n understand_v it_o that_o he_o be_v fellow-labourer_n with_o s._n paul_n and_o one_o of_o those_o who_o name_n be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n he_o be_v bear_v at_o rome_n upon_o mount_n caelius_n as_o beside_o other_o the_o 74._o the_o vit._n clement_n council_n tom._n 1._o col_fw-fr 74._o pontifical_a under_o the_o name_n of_o damasus_n
inform_v we_o his_o father_n name_n be_v faustinus_n but_o who_o he_o be_v and_o what_o his_o profession_n and_o course_n of_o life_n be_v not_o record_v indeed_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o recognition_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mention_v by_o the_o ancient_n and_o late_o publish_v we_o have_v more_o particular_a account_n concern_v he_o book_n which_o however_o false_o attribute_v to_o s._n clemens_n and_o liable_a in_o some_o case_n to_o just_a exception_n yet_o be_v of_o great_a antiquity_n in_o the_o church_n write_v not_o long_o after_o the_o apostolic_a age_n as_o we_o shall_v show_v hereafter_o we_o shall_v thence_o derive_v some_o few_o notice_n to_o our_o purpose_n though_o we_o can_v absolute_o engage_v for_o the_o certainty_n of_o they_o there_o we_o find_v s._n clemens_n bring_v in_o give_v this_o account_n of_o himself_o ii_o he_o paris_n he_o recogn_n l._n 7_o n._n 8._o p._n 476._o clem._n homil._n 12._o n._n 8._o p._n 678._o epitome_n ●_o 76._o p._n 781._o edit_fw-la paris_n be_v descend_v of_o a_o noble_a race_n spring_v from_o the_o family_n of_o the_o caesar_n his_o father_n faustinianus_n or_o faustus_n be_v near_o a_o kin_n to_o the_o emperor_n i_o suppose_v tiberius_n and_o educate_v together_o with_o he_o and_o by_o his_o procurement_n match_v with_o mattidia_n a_o woman_n of_o a_o prime_a family_n in_o rome_n he_o be_v the_o young_a of_o three_o son_n his_o two_o elder_a brother_n be_v faustinus_n and_o faustus_n who_o after_o change_v their_o name_n for_o nicetas_n and_o aquila_n his_o mother_n a_o woman_n it_o seem_v of_o exquisite_a beauty_n be_v by_o her_o husband_n own_o brother_n strong_o solicit_v to_o unchaste_a embrace_n to_o avoid_v who_o troublesome_a importunity_n and_o yet_o loath_a to_o reveal_v it_o to_o her_o husband_n lest_o it_o shall_v break_v out_o to_o the_o disturbance_n and_o dishonour_n of_o their_o family_n she_o find_v out_o this_o expedient_a she_o pretend_v to_o her_o husband_n that_o she_o be_v warn_v in_o a_o dream_n together_o with_o her_o two_o elder_a son_n to_o depart_v for_o some_o time_n from_o rome_n he_o according_o send_v they_o to_o reside_v at_o athens_n for_o the_o great_a conveniency_n of_o their_o education_n but_o hear_v nothing_o of_o they_o though_o he_o send_v messenger_n on_o purpose_n every_o year_n he_o resolve_v at_o last_o to_o go_v himself_o in_o pursuit_n of_o they_o which_o he_o do_v leave_v his_o young_a son_n than_o twelve_o year_n of_o age_n at_o home_n under_o the_o care_n of_o tutor_n and_o guardian_n ●49_n guardian_n recogn_n l._n 2._o ●_o 1._o p._n 399._o ●●_o hom._n 1._o p._n 540._o epist_n p._n ●49_n s._n clemens_n grow_v up_o in_o all_o manly_a study_n and_o virtuous_a action_n till_o fall_v under_o some_o great_a dissatisfaction_n of_o mind_n concern_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o state_n of_o the_o other_o life_n he_o apply_v himself_o to_o search_v more_o narrow_o into_o the_o nature_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n after_o have_v baffle_v all_o his_o own_o notion_n he_o betake_v himself_o to_o the_o school_n of_o the_o philosopher_n where_o he_o meet_v with_o nothing_o but_o fierce_a contention_n endless_a dispute_n sophistical_a and_o uncertain_a art_n of_o reason_v thence_o he_o resolve_v to_o consult_v the_o egyptian_a hierophantae_n and_o to_o see_v if_o he_o can_v meet_v with_o any_o who_o by_o art_n of_o magic_n be_v able_a to_o fetch_v back_o one_o of_o those_o who_o be_v depart_v to_o the_o invisible_a world_n the_o very_a sight_n of_o who_o may_v satisfy_v his_o curious_a inquiry_n about_o this_o matter_n while_o he_o be_v under_o this_o suspense_n he_o hear_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n his_o appear_v in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o excellent_a doctrine_n he_o have_v publish_v in_o judaea_n wherein_o he_o be_v further_o instruct_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o s._n barnabas_n who_o come_v to_o rome_n he_o he_o follow_v first_o to_o alexandria_n and_o thence_o after_o a_o little_a time_n to_o judaea_n arrive_v at_o caesarea_n he_o meet_v with_o s._n peter_n by_o who_o he_o be_v instruct_v and_o baptize_v who_o companion_n and_o disciple_n he_o continue_v for_o a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o life_n iii_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o what_o i_o think_v good_a to_o borrow_v from_o those_o ancient_a write_n as_o for_o his_o relation_n what_o various_a misadventure_n his_o father_n and_o mother_n and_o his_o two_o brother_n several_o meet_v with_o by_o what_o strange_a accident_n they_o all_o afterward_o meet_v together_o be_v convert_v and_o baptize_v into_o the_o christian_a faith_n i_o omit_v partly_o as_o less_o proper_a to_o my_o purpose_n partly_o because_o it_o look_v more_o like_o a_o drammatic_a scene_n of_o fancy_n than_o a_o true_a and_o real_a history_n as_o to_o that_o part_n of_o the_o account_n of_o his_o be_v relate_v to_o the_o imperial_a family_n though_o it_o be_v more_o than_o once_o and_o again_o confident_o assert_v by_o 247._o by_o h._n fee●_n l._n 2._o c._n 35._o p._n 191._o l._n 3._o c._n 2._o &_o 18._o p._n 247._o nicephorus_n who_o transcribe_v a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o story_n and_o by_o corinth_n by_o euther_n lugd._n ad_fw-la valerian_n de_fw-fr contempt_n mund._o anonym_n de_fw-fr vit_fw-fr petr._n &_o paul_n ap_fw-mi p._n jun._n not_o in_o clem._n ep._n ad_fw-la corinth_n other_o before_o he_o yet_o i_o can_v but_o behold_v it_o as_o a_o evident_a mistake_n arise_v from_o no_o other_o fountain_n than_o the_o story_n of_o flavius_n clemens_n the_o consul_n who_o be_v cousin-german_a to_o the_o emperor_n domitian_n and_o his_o wife_n flavia_n domitilla_n near_o akin_a also_o to_o the_o emperor_n concern_v who_o conversion_n to_o and_o martyrdom_n for_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n we_o have_v 3._o have_v primit_fw-la christ_n p._n 1._o ch_n 3._o elsewhere_o give_v a_o account_n from_o the_o writer_n of_o those_o time_n probable_a it_o be_v that_o s._n clemens_n for_o the_o main_n attend_v s._n peter_n motion_n and_o come_v with_o he_o to_o rome_n where_o he_o have_v at_o last_o the_o government_n of_o that_o church_n commit_v to_o he_o 1._o he_o synop_n de_fw-fr vit_fw-fr app._n in_o bibl._n pp_n tom_n 3._o p._n 150._o col_fw-fr 1._o dorotheus_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o gentile_n that_o embrace_v the_o christian_a faith_n and_o that_o he_o be_v first_o make_v bishop_n of_o sardica_n a_o city_n in_o thrace_n afterward_o call_v triaditza_n and_o then_o of_o rome_n but_o herein_o i_o think_v he_o stand_v alone_o i_o be_o sure_a have_v none_o of_o the_o ancient_n to_o join_v with_o he_o unless_o he_o understand_v it_o of_o another_o clemens_n who_o the_o 508._o the_o chron._n alex._n p._n 508._o chronicon_fw-la alexandrinum_fw-la also_o make_v one_o of_o the_o lxx_o disciple_n but_o withal_o seem_v to_o confound_v with_o we_o that_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v a_o unanimous_a and_o unquestionable_a agreement_n of_o all_o ancient_a writer_n though_o they_o strange_o vary_v about_o the_o place_n and_o order_n of_o his_o come_n to_o it_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n how_o great_a word_n soever_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o constant_a and_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o s._n peter_n chair_n be_v yet_o involve_v in_o a_o inextricable_a labyrinth_n about_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o four_o first_o bishop_n of_o that_o see_v scarce_o two_o of_o they_o of_o any_o note_n bring_v in_o the_o same_o account_n i_o shall_v not_o attempt_v to_o accommodate_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o several_a scheme_n that_o be_v give_v in_o but_o only_o propose_v what_o i_o conceive_v most_o likely_a and_o probable_a iu._n evident_a it_o be_v both_o from_o 232._o from_o adu._n heres_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 3._o p._n 232._o irenaeus_n and_o 256._o and_o epiph._n haeres_fw-la xxvii_o p._n 51._o vid._n ham._n dissert_n v._o c._n 1._o p._n 256._o epiphanius_n as_o also_o before_o they_o from_o &_o from_o cal._n adv_o proc●l_n &_o caius_n a_o ancient_a writer_n and_o from_o 68_o from_o diony_n epist_n ad_fw-la rom._n apud_fw-la euseb_n l._n 2._o c._n 25._o p._n 68_o dionysius_n bishop_n of_o corinth_n that_o peter_n and_o paul_n joint_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o be_v therefore_o equal_o style_v bishop_n of_o it_o the_o one_o as_o apostle_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o we_o may_v probable_o suppose_v take_v care_n of_o the_o gentile_a christian_n while_o the_o other_o as_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o circumcision_n apply_v himself_o to_o the_o jewish_a convert_v at_o rome_n for_o we_o can_v imagine_v that_o there_o be_v such_o chronical_a and_o inveterate_a prejudices_fw-la between_o jew_n and_o gentile_n especial_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n they_o shall_v be_v sudden_o lay_v aside_o and_o both_o enter-common_a in_o one_o public_a society_n we_o know_v that_o in_o the_o church_n
which_o be_v form_v according_a to_o the_o mode_n of_o the_o greek_n as_o 3●6_n as_o contr._n cell_n l._n 6._o p._n 3●6_n origen_n long_o since_o observe_v in_o this_o very_a instance_n who_o be_v wont_a to_o add_v as_o to_o the_o termination_n of_o word_n borrow_v from_o a_o foreign_a language_n become_v satanas_n a_o adversary_n and_o therefore_o a_o late_a 44._o late_a sand._n t●e●t_n de_fw-fr vet._n script_n eccl._n hist_o ecccles_n tom._n 1._o praefix_v p._n 44._o author_n who_o have_v weed_v the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_n and_o who_o quotation_n savour_v of_o infinite_o great_a ostentation_n than_o either_o judgement_n or_o fidelity_n sufficient_o betray_v his_o ignorance_n in_o those_o vety_n father_n with_o which_o he_o pretend_v so_o much_o acquaintance_n when_o to_o prove_v the_o quaest_n &_o resp_n ad_fw-la orthodoxos_fw-la not_o to_o be_v the_o genuine_a work_n of_o our_o jus●●_n he_o urge_v the_o odd_a and_o ridiculous_a interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n osanna_n there_o render_v 421._o render_v vid._n quaest_n l._n p._n 421._o by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d superexcellent_a magnificence_n of_o the_o true_a signification_n whereof_o say_v he_o justin_n himself_o be_v a_o samaritan_n can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a when_o as_o his_o unquestionable_a tract_n afford_v such_o evident_a footstep_n of_o his_o lamentable_a unskilfulness_n in_o that_o language_n but_o the_o man_n must_v be_v excuse_v see_v in_o this_o as_o in_o many_o other_o thing_n he_o trade_v pure_o upon_o trust_n secure_o steal_v the_o whole_a passage_n word_n for_o word_n out_o of_o another_o author_n 198._o vid._n rivet_n crit._n sacr._n l._n 2._o c._n 5._o p._n 198._o so_o little_a skill_n have_v he_o to_o distinguish_v between_o true_a and_o false_a and_o to_o know_v when_o to_o follow_v his_o guide_n and_o where_o to_o leave_v they_o as_o for_o justin_n himself_o his_o ignorance_n herein_o be_v the_o less_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o if_o we_o consider_v that_o his_o religion_n as_o a_o gentile_a bear_v his_o early_a and_o almost_o sole_a converse_n with_o the_o greek_n his_o constant_a study_n of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o gentile_a philosopher_n may_v well_o make_v he_o a_o stranger_n to_o that_o language_n which_o have_v not_o much_o in_o it_o to_o tempt_v a_o mere_a philosopher_n to_o learn_v it_o in_o all_o other_o part_n of_o learning_n how_o great_a his_o ability_n be_v may_v be_v see_v in_o his_o write_n yet_o extant_a to_o say_v nothing_o of_o they_o that_o be_v lose_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o 139._o as_o h._n eccl._n l._n 4._o c._n 18._o p._n 139._o eusebius_n say_v of_o they_o the_o monument_n of_o his_o singular_a part_n and_o of_o a_o mind_n studious_o conversant_a about_o divine_a thing_n rich_o fraught_v with_o excellent_a and_o useful_a knowledge_n they_o be_v all_o design_v either_o in_o defence_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n both_o against_o jew_n and_o gentile_n or_o in_o beat_v down_o that_o common_a religion_n and_o those_o profane_a and_o ridiculous_a rite_n of_o worship_n which_o then_o govern_v the_o world_n or_o in_o prescribe_v rule_n for_o the_o ordinary_a conduct_n of_o the_o christian_a life_n all_o which_o he_o have_v manage_v with_o a_o admirable_a acuteness_n and_o dexterity_n some_o book_n indeed_o have_v obtrude_v themselves_o under_o his_o name_n as_o the_o expositio_fw-la fidei_fw-la quaestiones_fw-la &_o responsa_fw-la ad_fw-la orthodoxos_fw-la quaestiones_fw-la graecanicae_fw-la ad_fw-la christianos_n quaestiones_fw-la v._o ad_fw-la graecos_n etc._n etc._n all_o which_o be_v undoubted_o of_o a_o late_a age_n compose_v after_o christianity_n be_v full_o settle_v in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o arrian_n controversy_n have_v begin_v to_o disturb_v the_o christian_a church_n or_o if_o any_o of_o they_o be_v original_o he_o they_o have_v be_v so_o miserable_o interpolate_v and_o deface_v by_o after-age_n that_o it_o be_v almost_o impossible_a to_o discern_v true_a from_o false_a xix_o as_o for_o the_o epistle_n to_o diognetus_n though_o except_v against_o by_o some_o yet_o be_v it_o fair_o able_a to_o maintain_v its_o title_n without_o any_o just_a cause_n allege_v against_o it_o nor_o be_v it_o improbable_a but_o that_o this_o may_v be_v that_o very_a diognetus_n who_o be_v tutor_n to_o the_o emperor_n m._n aurelius_n who_o as_o himself_o confess_v 1._o confess_v m._n aurel._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d l._n l._n 1._o §._o 6._o p._n 1._o persuade_v he_o to_o the_o study_n of_o philosophy_n and_o give_v he_o wise_a counsel_n and_o direction_n to_o that_o purpose_n and_o be_v a_o person_n of_o note_n and_o eminency_n be_v according_o salute_v by_o the_o martyr_n with_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d most_o excellent_a diognetus_n his_o temper_n and_o course_n of_o life_n have_v make_v he_o infinite_o curious_a as_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o first_o part_n of_o that_o epistle_n to_o know_v particular_o what_o be_v the_o religion_n what_o the_o manner_n and_o rite_n of_o christian_n what_o it_o be_v that_o inspire_v they_o with_o so_o brave_a and_o generous_a a_o courage_n as_o to_o contemn_v the_o world_n and_o to_o despise_v death_n upon_o what_o ground_n they_o reject_v the_o religion_n and_o disow_v the_o deity_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o yet_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o jewish_a discipline_n and_o way_n of_o worship_n what_o be_v that_o admirable_a love_n and_o friendship_n by_o which_o they_o be_v so_o fast_o knit_v together_o and_o why_o this_o novel_a institution_n come_v so_o late_o into_o the_o world_n to_o all_o which_o inquiry_n suitable_a enough_o to_o a_o man_n of_o a_o philosophic_a genius_n justin_n to_o who_o probable_o he_o have_v a_o ddress_v himself_o as_o the_o most_o note_a champion_n of_o the_o christian_a cause_n return_v a_o very_a particular_a and_o rational_a satisfaction_n in_o this_o epistle_n though_o what_o effect_v it_o have_v upon_o the_o philosopher_n be_v unknown_a that_o this_o epistle_n be_v not_o mention_v by_o eusebius_n be_v no_o just_a exception_n see_v he_o confess_v 140._o confess_v h._n eccl._n l._n 4._o c._n 18._o p._n 140._o there_o be_v many_o other_o book_n of_o justins_n beside_o those_o which_o he_o there_o reckon_v up_o that_o it_o be_v a_o little_a more_o than_o ordinary_a polite_a and_o philosophical_a be_v yet_o less_o for_o who_o can_v wonder_v if_o so_o great_a a_o scholar_n as_o justin_n write_v to_o a_o person_n so_o eminent_a for_o learning_n and_o philosophy_n endeavour_v to_o give_v it_o all_o the_o advantage_n of_o a_o florid_n and_o eloquent_a discourse_n it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o his_o ordinary_a stile_n do_v not_o reach_v this_o for_o which_o let_v we_o take_v photius_n citat_fw-la photius_n loc._n supr_fw-la citat_fw-la his_o censure_n a_o man_n able_a to_o pass_v a_o judgement_n in_o this_o case_n he_o study_v not_o say_v he_o to_o set_v off_o the_o native_a beauty_n of_o philosophy_n with_o the_o paint_n and_o varnish_v of_o rhetorical_a arts._n for_o which_o cause_n his_o discourse_n though_o otherwise_o very_o weighty_a and_o powerful_a and_o observe_v a_o composure_n agreeable_a enough_o to_o art_n and_o science_n have_v not_o yet_o those_o sweet_a and_o luscious_a insinuation_n those_o attractive_n and_o allurement_n that_o be_v wont_a to_o prevail_v upon_o vulgar_a auditor_n and_o to_o draw_v they_o after_o they_o xx._n that_o which_o may_v seem_v most_o to_o impair_v the_o credit_n of_o this_o ancient_a and_o venerable_a man_n be_v that_o he_o be_v common_o say_v to_o be_v guilty_a of_o some_o unorthodox_n sentiment_n and_o opinion_n disagree_v with_o the_o receive_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n true_a it_o be_v that_o he_o have_v some_o notion_n not_o warrant_v by_o general_a entertainment_n or_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o in_o late_a age_n but_o yet_o scarce_o any_o but_o what_o be_v hold_v by_o most_o of_o the_o father_n in_o those_o early_a time_n and_o which_o for_o the_o main_n be_v speculative_a and_o have_v no_o ill_a influence_n upon_o a_o good_a life_n the_o most_o considerable_a whereof_o we_o shall_v here_o remark_n first_o he_o be_v charge_v with_o too_o much_o kindness_n and_o indulgence_n to_o the_o more_o eminent_a sort_n of_o heathen_n and_o particular_o towards_o socrates_n 83._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d apol._n ii_o pag._n 83._o heraclitus_n and_o such_o like_a such_o indeed_o he_o seem_v to_o allow_v to_o have_v be_v in_o some_o sense_n christian_n and_o of_o socrates_n particular_o 48._o particular_o apol._n i._o p._n 48._o affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o part_n know_v to_o he_o and_o the_o like_a elsewhere_o more_o than_o once_o the_o ground_n of_o all_o which_o be_v this_o that_o such_o person_n do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d live_v according_a to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n or_o reason_n and_o that_o this_o natural_o be_v in_o every_o man_n and_o manifest_v to_o he_o
in_o his_o letter_n to_o pope_n victor_n particular_o reckon_v 191._o reckon_v ap._n euseb_n l._n 5._o c._n 24._o p._n 191._o sagaris_n and_o melito_n among_o the_o chief_a champion_n of_o the_o cause_n this_o paschal_n book_n of_o s._n melito_n be_v mention_v also_o by_o 147._o by_o ap._n euseb_n ubi_fw-la s●pr_fw-la p._n 147._o clemens_n of_o alexandria_n in_o a_o tract_n concern_v the_o same_o subject_n wherein_o he_o confess_v that_o he_o be_v move_v to_o that_o undertake_n by_o the_o discourse_n which_o melito_n have_v publish_v upon_o that_o subject_n v._o how_o unwearied_a be_v true_a goodness_n and_o a_o love_n to_o soul_n how_o will_v to_o digest_v any_o difficulty_n by_o which_o another_o happiness_n may_v be_v advance_v his_o brother_n onesimus_n have_v desire_v of_o he_o to_o remark_n such_o passage_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o principal_o make_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o to_o let_v he_o know_v how_o many_o of_o those_o book_n be_v admit_v into_o the_o holy_a canon_n wherein_o that_o he_o may_v at_o once_o thorough_o satisfy_v both_o his_o brother_n and_o himself_o he_o take_v a_o journey_n on_o purpose_n into_o the_o east_n that_o be_v i_o suppose_v to_o jerusalem_n where_o he_o be_v likely_a to_o receive_v full_a satisfaction_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o where_o have_v inform_v himself_o he_o give_v his_o brother_n at_o his_o return_n a_o account_n of_o it_o the_o letter_n itself_o because_o but_o short_a and_o contain_v so_o authentic_a a_o evidence_n what_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v receive_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n we_o shall_v here_o subjoin_v melito_n to_o his_o brother_n onesimus_n greeting_n for_o as_o much_o as_o out_o of_o your_o great_a love_n to_o and_o delight_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n you_o have_v oft_o desire_v i_o to_o collect_v such_o passage_n out_o of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n as_o relate_v to_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o several_a part_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n and_o to_o be_v certain_o inform_v of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n how_o many_o in_o number_n and_o in_o what_o order_n they_o be_v write_v i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o comply_v with_o your_o desire_n in_o this_o affair_n for_o i_o know_v your_o great_a zeal_n and_o care_n concern_v the_o faith_n and_o how_o much_o you_o desire_v to_o be_v instruct_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o especial_o out_o of_o your_o love_n to_o god_n how_o infinite_o you_o prefer_v these_o above_o all_o other_o thing_n and_o be_v solicitous_a about_o your_o eternal_a salvation_n in_o order_n hereunto_o i_o travel_v into_o the_o east_n and_o be_v arrive_v at_o the_o place_n where_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v and_o publish_v and_o have_v accurate_o inform_v myself_o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n i_o have_v send_v you_o the_o follow_a account_n the_o five_o book_n of_o moses_n genesis_n exodus_fw-la leviticus_n number_n deuteronomy_n jesus_n or_o joshua_n the_o son_n of_o nun_n judges_z ruth_n the_o four_o book_n of_o king_n two_o book_n of_o chronicle_n the_o psalm_n of_o david_n the_o proverb_n of_o solomon_n which_o be_v wisdom_n ecclesiastes_n the_o song_n of_o song_n job_n the_o prophet_n isaiah_n jeremiah_n the_o twelve_o minor_a prophet_n in_o one_o book_n daniel_n ezekiel_n esdras_n or_o ezra_n out_o of_o all_o which_o i_o have_v make_v collection_n which_o i_o have_v digest_v into_o six_o book_n vi_o in_o which_o catalogue_n we_o may_v observe_v the_o book_n of_o esther_n be_v omit_v as_o it_o be_v also_o by_o 471._o by_o synop_n s._n script_n p._n 471._o s._n athanasius_n 2._o athanasius_n carm._n xxxiii_o p._n 98._o to●_n 2._o gregory_n nat●ianzen_n and_o 408._o and_o sect._n act._n ii_o p._n 408._o lcontius_n in_o their_o enumeration_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o holy_a canon_n though_o for_o what_o reason_n be_v uncertain_a unless_o as_o 5._o as_o biblioth_n s._n l._n 1._o p._n 5._o sixtus_n senensis_n not_o improbable_o conjecture_n because_o it_o be_v not_o in_o those_o time_n look_v upon_o as_o of_o such_o unquestionable_a credit_n and_o authority_n as_o the_o rest_n the_o spurious_a addition_n at_o the_o end_n of_o it_o cause_v the_o whole_a book_n to_o be_v call_v in_o question_n nor_o be_v here_o any_o particular_a mention_n make_v of_o nehemiah_n probable_o because_o it_o be_v ancient_o comprehend_v under_o that_o of_o esdras_n and_o by_o that_o of_o wisdom_n we_o see_v be_v not_o mean_v the_o apocryphal_a book_n call_v the_o wisdom_n of_o solomon_n as_o 150._o as_o de_fw-fr script_n eccl._n in_o melit_fw-la ad_fw-la ann._n 150._o bellarmine_n and_o most_o writer_n of_o that_o church_n confident_o enough_o assert_v but_o his_o proverb_n of_o which_o 143._o which_o lib._n 4._o c._n 22._o p._n 143._o eusebius_n express_o tell_v we_o that_o not_o only_a hegesippus_n but_o irenaeus_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_n be_v wont_a to_o call_v the_o proverb_n of_o solomon_n by_o the_o name_n of_o wisdom_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o wisdom_n contain_v a_o system_fw-la of_o all_o kind_n of_o virtue_n and_o indeed_o that_o melito_n in_o this_o place_n can_v mean_v no_o other_o the_o word_n of_o his_o letter_n as_o restore_v by_o valesius_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o nicephorus_n his_o quotation_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o the_o best_a and_o most_o ancient_a manuscript_n put_v the_o case_n beyond_o all_o peradventure_o vii_o at_o last_o this_o good_a man_n break_v with_o infinite_a pain_n and_o labour_n and_o weary_v with_o the_o inquietude_n of_o a_o troublesome_a world_n retreat_v to_o the_o place_n of_o rest_n the_o time_n and_o manner_n of_o his_o death_n be_v unknown_a this_o only_a we_o find_v 191._o find_v poly●rat_fw-la fp._n ap_fw-mi euseb_n ubi_fw-la p._n 191._o that_o he_o die_v and_o lie_v bury_v at_o sardis_n wait_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o episcopal_a visitation_n from_o heaven_n when_o our_o lord_n shall_v come_v and_o raise_v he_o up_o from_o the_o dead_a he_o be_v a_o man_n beside_o the_o piety_n of_o his_o mind_n and_o the_o strictness_n and_o innocency_n of_o his_o life_n of_o great_a part_n and_o learning_n he_o have_v elegans_fw-la &_o declamatorium_fw-la ingenium_fw-la as_o melit_fw-la as_o apud_fw-la hieron_n de_fw-fr script_n in_o melit_fw-la tertullian_n say_v of_o he_o a_o smart_n elegant_a wit_n able_a to_o represent_v thing_n with_o their_o most_o proper_a aggravation_n he_o write_v book_n almost_o in_o all_o kind_n of_o subject_n divine_a moral_a and_o philosophical_a the_o monument_n of_o no_o less_o industry_n than_o learning_n which_o be_v all_o long_a since_o lose_v some_o very_a few_o fragment_n only_o except_v i_o know_v there_o be_v that_o suspect_v he_o to_o have_v have_v notion_n less_o orthodox_n about_o some_o of_o the_o great_a principle_n of_o religion_n which_o i_o confess_v seem_v to_o i_o a_o most_o uncharitable_a and_o unjust_a reflection_n upon_o so_o holy_a and_o so_o good_a a_o man_n especial_o see_v the_o conjecture_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o mere_a title_n of_o some_o of_o his_o book_n none_o of_o the_o book_n themselves_o be_v extant_a and_o of_o those_o title_n a_o fair_a account_n may_v be_v give_v to_o satisfy_v any_o sober_a and_o impartial_a man_n there_o be_v but_o two_o that_o can_v be_v liable_a to_o exception_n the_o one_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d de_fw-fr deo_fw-la not_o corporeo_fw-la however_o 21._o however_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d theod._n quest_n xx._n in_o genes_n tom._n 1._o pag._n 21._o theodoret_n and_o as_o it_o seem_v from_o origen_n understand_v it_o but_o corporato_n as_o tertullian_n will_v express_v it_o de_fw-fr deo_fw-la corpore_fw-la induto_fw-la as_o rufinus_n of_o old_a translate_v it_o concern_v god_n clothe_v with_o a_o body_n or_o the_o word_n make_v flesh_n the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d most_o copy_n read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o creation_n and_o generation_n of_o christ_n where_o admit_v it_o to_o have_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d creation_n he_o allude_v i_o doubt_v not_o to_o that_o of_o solomon_n the_o lord_n possess_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d create_v i_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o way_n and_o evident_a it_o be_v that_o before_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o arrian_n controversy_n the_o plura_fw-la the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d constit_fw-la apost_n l._n 5._o c._n 19_o col_fw-fr 370._o caterum_fw-la ne_fw-la tune_n quidem_fw-la solus_fw-la habebat_fw-la enim_fw-la secum_fw-la quem_fw-la habebat_fw-la in_o semetips●_n rationem_fw-la svam_fw-la scilicet_fw-la han●_n graeci_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o aque_fw-la sophiam_fw-la quoque_fw-la exaudi_fw-la ut_fw-la secundam_fw-la pe●sonam_fw-la conditam_fw-la primo_fw-la dominus_fw-la creavit_fw-la i_o initium_fw-la viarum_fw-la in_o opera_fw-la sva_fw-la etc._n etc._n nam_fw-la ut_fw-la primum_fw-la deus_fw-la voluit_fw-la
be_v the_o true_a standard_n and_o measure_n of_o truth_n he_o consider_v that_o no_o man_n know_v every_o thing_n that_o some_o thing_n be_v obvious_a to_o one_o that_o be_v oversee_v or_o neglect_v by_o another_o that_o there_o be_v wholesome_a herb_n and_o flower_n in_o every_o field_n and_o that_o if_o the_o thing_n be_v well_o say_v it_o be_v no_o matter_n who_o it_o be_v that_o say_v it_o that_o reason_n be_v to_o be_v submit_v to_o before_o authority_n and_o though_o a_o fair_a regard_n be_v due_a to_o the_o opinion_n and_o principle_n of_o our_o friend_n yet_o that_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o 2._o as_o ethic._n l._n 1._o c._n 4._o p._n 3._o tom._n 2._o aristotle_n himself_o confess_v more_o pious_a and_o reasonable_a to_o honour_n and_o esteem_v the_o truth_n and_o thus_o he_o pick_v up_o a_o system_fw-la of_o noble_a principle_n like_v so_o many_o flower_n out_o of_o several_a garden_n profess_v ●it_n profess_v laert._n loc_fw-la ●it_n this_o to_o be_v the_o great_a end_n of_o all_o his_o disquisition_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o life_n perfect_v according_a to_o all_o the_o rule_n of_o virtue_n of_o this_o incomparable_a order_n be_v our_o divine_a philosopher_n i_o espouse_v not_o say_v he_o 288._o he_o strom._n l._n 2._o p._n 288._o this_o or_o that_o philosophy_n not_o the_o stoic_a nor_o the_o platonic_a not_o the_o epicurean_a or_o that_o of_o aristotle_n but_o whatever_o any_o of_o these_o sect_n have_v say_v that_o be_v fit_a and_o just_a that_o teach_v righteousness_n with_o a_o divine_a and_o religious_a knowledge_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o that_o be_v select_v i_o call_v philosophy_n though_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o of_o any_o sect_n he_o come_v near_o to_o the_o stoic_n as_o appear_v from_o his_o discourse_v by_o way_n of_o paradox_n and_o his_o affect_a novelty_n of_o word_n two_o thing_n peculiar_a to_o the_o man_n of_o that_o way_n as_o a_o very_a learned_a and_o ingenious_a person_n 115._o person_n h._n dodwel_n prol●●●●_n apol._n ad_fw-la 〈…〉_o de_fw-fr 〈…〉_o 115._o have_v observe_v and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o he_o be_v more_o peculiar_o dispose_v towards_o this_o sect_n by_o the_o instruction_n of_o his_o master_n pantaenus_n so_o great_a and_o profess_v a_o admirer_n of_o the_o stoical_a philosophy_n iv_o pantaenus_n be_v dead_a he_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o schola_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o catechetic_a school_n at_o alexandria_n though_o questionless_a he_o teach_v in_o it_o long_o before_o that_o and_o probable_o during_o pantaenus_n his_o absence_n in_o india_n supply_v his_o place_n till_o his_o return_n and_o succeed_v in_o it_o after_o his_o death_n for_o that_o he_o be_v pantaenus_n his_o successor_n the_o ancient_n 297._o ancient_n euseb_n l._n 6._o c._n 6._o p._n 208._o hieron_n de_fw-fr script_n in_o clement_n phot._n cod._n cxviii_o col_fw-fr 297._o be_v all_o agree_v here_o he_o teach_v with_o great_a industry_n and_o fidelity_n and_o with_o no_o less_o success_n some_o of_o the_o most_o eminent_a man_n of_o those_o time_n origen_n alexander_n bishop_n of_o hicrusalem_n and_o other_o be_v breed_v under_o he_o and_o now_o as_o 278._o as_o strom._n l._n 1._o p._n 278._o himself_o confess_v he_o find_v his_o philosophy_n and_o gentile-learning_n very_o useful_a to_o he_o for_o as_o the_o husbandman_n first_o water_v the_o soil_n and_o then_o cast_v in_o the_o seed_n so_o the_o notion_n he_o derive_v out_o of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o gentile_n serve_v first_o to_o water_n and_o soften_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o gross_a and_o terrestrial_a part_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o the_o spiritual_a seed_n may_v be_v the_o better_o cast_v in_o and_o take_v vital_a root_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n beside_o the_o office_n of_o a_o catechist_n he_o be_v make_v presbyter_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n and_o that_o at_o least_o about_o the_o begin_n of_o severus_n his_o reign_n for_o under_o that_o capacity_n eusebius_n take_v notice_n of_o he_o ann._n cxcu._n about_o which_o time_n prompt_v by_o his_o own_o zeal_n and_o oblige_v by_o the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o time_n he_o set_v himself_o to_o vindicate_v the_o cause_n of_o christianity_n both_o against_o heathen_n and_o heretic_n which_o he_o have_v do_v at_o large_a with_o singular_a learning_n and_o dexterity_n in_o his_o book_n call_v stromata_n publish_v about_o this_o time_n for_o draw_v down_o a_o chronological_a 336._o chronological_a strom._n l._n 1._o p._n 336._o account_n of_o thing_n he_o end_v his_o computation_n in_o the_o death_n of_o the_o emperor_n commodus_n whence_o it_o be_v evident_a as_o 208._o as_o lib._n 6._o c._n 6._o p._n 208._o eusebius_n observe_v that_o he_o compile_v that_o volume_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o severus_n that_o succeed_v he_o v._o the_o persecution_n under_o severus_n rage_v in_o all_o province_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o particular_o at_o alexandria_n which_o make_v many_o of_o the_o christian_n for_o the_o present_a willing_a to_o retire_v and_o clemens_n probable_o among_o the_o rest_n who_o we_o therefore_o find_v particular_o discourse_v 504._o discourse_v stromat_n l._n 4._o p._n 504._o the_o lawfulness_n of_o withdraw_a in_o a_o time_n of_o persecution_n that_o though_o we_o may_v not_o cowardly_o decline_v a_o danger_n or_o death_n when_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o sake_n of_o religion_n yet_o in_o other_o case_n we_o be_v to_o follow_v the_o direction_n of_o our_o saviour_n when_o they_o persecute_v you_o in_o one_o city_n flee_v you_o into_o another_o and_o not_o to_o obey_v in_o such_o a_o case_n be_v to_o be_v bold_a and_o rash_a and_o unwarrantable_o to_o precipitate_v ourselves_o into_o danger_n that_o if_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n against_o god_n to_o destroy_v a_o man_n who_o be_v his_o image_n that_o man_n make_v himself_o guilty_a of_o the_o crime_n who_o offer_v himself_o to_o the_o public_a tribunal_n and_o little_o better_a do_v he_o that_o when_o he_o may_v decline_v not_o the_o persecution_n but_o rash_o expose_v himself_o to_o be_v apprehend_v thereby_o to_o his_o power_n conspire_v with_o the_o wickedness_n of_o his_o persecutor_n and_o if_o further_o he_o irritate_fw-la and_o provoke_v they_o he_o be_v unquestionable_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o own_o ruin_n like_o a_o man_n that_o needless_o rouze_v and_o enrage_v a_o wild_a beast_n to_o fall_v upon_o he_o and_o this_o opportunity_n i_o doubt_v not_o he_o take_v to_o visit_v the_o eastern_a part_n where_o he_o have_v study_v in_o his_o young_a day_n we_o find_v he_o about_o this_o time_n at_o jerusalem_n with_o alexander_n short_o after_o bishop_n of_o that_o place_n between_o who_o there_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v a_o peculiar_a intimacy_n insomuch_o that_o s._n clemens_n dedicate_v clement_n dedicate_v euseb_n l._n 6._o c._n 14._o pag._n 214._o hieron_n in_o clement_n his_o book_n to_o he_o call_v the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o against_o they_o that_o judaize_n during_o his_o stay_n here_o he_o preach_v constant_o and_o decline_v no_o pain_n even_o in_o that_o evil_a time_n and_o with_o what_o success_n we_o may_v see_v by_o a_o piece_n of_o a_o letter_n write_v by_o alexander_n then_o in_o prison_n and_o send_v by_o our_o s._n clemens_n to_o antioch_n which_o we_o here_o insert_v 212._o insert_v apud_fw-la euseb_n ib._n c._n 11._o p._n 212._o alexander_n a_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o a_o prisoner_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o the_o bless_a church_n at_o antioch_n in_o the_o lord_n greeting_n our_o lord_n have_v make_v my_o bond_n in_o this_o time_n of_o my_o imprisonment_n light_n and_o easy_a to_o i_o while_o i_o understand_v that_o asclepiades_n a_o person_n admirable_o qualify_v by_o his_o eminency_n in_o the_o faith_n be_v by_o the_o divine_a providence_n become_v bishop_n of_o your_o holy_a church_n of_o antioch_n conclude_v these_o letter_n worthy_a brethren_n i_o have_v send_v you_o by_o clemens_n the_o bless_a presbyter_n a_o man_n virtuous_a and_o approve_a who_o you_o both_o do_v and_o shall_v yet_o further_o know_v who_o have_v be_v here_o with_o we_o according_a to_o the_o good_a will_n and_o providence_n of_o god_n have_v great_o establish_v and_o increase_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o epistle_n we_o may_v by_o the_o way_n remark_n the_o error_n of_o ccxii_o of_o in_o chron._n ad_fw-la ann._n ccxii_o eusebius_n who_o place_v asclepiades_n his_o come_n to_o the_o see_v of_o antioch_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o caracalla_n ann._n ccxii_o whereas_o we_o see_v it_o be_v while_o alexander_n be_v yet_o in_o prison_n under_o severus_n which_o he_o himself_o make_v to_o be_v ann._n ccv_o from_o jerusalem_n then_o clemens_n go_v to_o antioch_n where_o we_o can_v question_v but_o he_o take_v the_o same_o pain_n and_o labour_v with_o the_o same_o zeal_n and_o
and_o stroke_n of_o it_o the_o best_a be_v their_o great_a piety_n and_o serviceableness_n in_o their_o generation_n while_o they_o live_v and_o the_o singular_a usefulness_n of_o their_o write_n to_o posterity_n since_o they_o be_v dead_a be_v abundant_o enough_o to_o weigh_v down_o any_o little_a failure_n or_o mistake_n that_o drop_v from_o they_o his_o write_n extant_a protrepticon_fw-la ad_fw-la gentes_fw-la paedagogi_fw-la libri_fw-la iii_o stromatewv_o libri_fw-la viii_o orat._n quisnam_fw-la dive_v ille_fw-la sit_fw-la qui_fw-la salvetur_fw-la epitome_n doctrinae_fw-la orientalis_n theodoti_n etc._n etc._n not_o extant_a hypotyposcwv_o seu_fw-la institutionum_fw-la libri_fw-la viii_o canon_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la seu_fw-la adversus_fw-la judaizantes_fw-la de_fw-fr paschate_n de_fw-fr obtrectatione_n disputationes_fw-la de_fw-la jejunio_fw-la exhortatio_fw-la ad_fw-la patientiam_fw-la ad_fw-la neophytos_fw-la supposititious_a commentariola_n in_o prim._n canonicam_fw-la s._n petri_n in_o epistolam_fw-la judae_fw-la &_o tres_fw-la epistolas_fw-la s._n joannis_n apostoli_fw-la the_o end_n of_o s._n clemens_n alexandrinus_n his_o life_n the_o life_n of_o tertullian_n presbyter_n of_o carthage_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d michael_n burgher_n delineavit_fw-la et_fw-la sculpsit_fw-la tertullianus_n his_o name_n whence_o his_o father_n who_o his_o education_n in_o all_o kind_n of_o learning_n his_o skill_n in_o the_o roman_a law_n different_a from_o tertylian_a the_o lawyer_n his_o way_n of_o life_n before_o his_o conversion_n inquire_v into_o his_o marry_a condition_n his_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n when_o the_o great_a cruelty_n use_v towards_o the_o christian_n severus_n his_o kindness_n to_o they_o tertullia_n excellent_a apology_n in_o their_o behalf_n his_o address_n to_o scapula_n and_o the_o tendency_n of_o that_o discourse_n severus_n his_o violent_a persecute_v the_o christian_n his_o prohibition_n of_o the_o heteriae_fw-la tertullia_n book_n to_o the_o martyr_n and_o concern_v patience_n his_o zeal_n against_o heresy_n and_o write_n that_o way_n his_o book_n de_fw-fr pallio_fw-la when_o write_v and_o upon_o what_o occasion_n his_o become_a presbyter_n when_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr corona_n and_o what_o the_o occasion_n of_o it_o his_o decline_a from_o the_o catholic_a party_n montanus_n who_o and_o whence_o his_o principle_n and_o practice_n tertullia_n own_v they_o and_o upon_o what_o occasion_n his_o morose_n and_o stubborn_a temper_n how_o far_o he_o comply_v with_o the_o montanist_n and_o acknowledge_v the_o paraclete_n how_o he_o be_v impose_v upon_o his_o writing_n against_o the_o catholic_n the_o severity_n of_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n episcopus_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la in_o what_o sense_n mean_v by_o tertullian_n concern_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o separate_a meeting_n at_o carthage_n his_o death_n his_o character_n his_o singular_a part_n and_o learning_n his_o book_n his_o phrase_n and_o stile_n what_o contribute_v to_o its_o perplexedness_n and_o obscurity_n his_o un-orthodox_a opinion_n a_o brief_a plea_n for_o he_o i._o qvintus_n septimius_n florence_o tertullianus_n be_v as_o the_o ancient_n 334._o ancient_n hieron_n de_fw-fr script_n in_o tertul._n niceph._n h._n eccl._n l._n 4._o c._n 34._o p_o 334._o affirm_v and_o himself_o 9_o himself_o de_fw-fr pall._n c._n 1._o p._n 112._o &_o apolog_n c._n 9_o p._n 9_o imply_v when_o he_o call_v it_o his_o country_n bear_v at_o carthage_n the_o metropolis_n of_o afric_n famous_a above_o all_o other_o for_o antiquity_n sovereignty_n and_o power_n insomuch_o that_o for_o some_o age_n it_o contend_v for_o glory_n and_o superiority_n even_o with_o rome_n itself_o he_o be_v call_v septimius_n because_o descend_v of_o the_o gens_n septimia_n a_o tribe_n of_o great_a account_n among_o the_o roman_n be_v first_o regal_a afterward_o plebeian_n and_o last_o of_o all_o consular_a and_o patrician_n florin_n from_o some_o particular_a family_n of_o that_o house_n so_o call_v and_z quintus_z a_o title_n common_a among_o the_o roman_n probable_o because_o the_o five_o child_n which_o his_o parent_n have_v and_o tertullian_n a_o derivative_a from_o tertullus_n it_o be_v like_a from_o his_o immediate_a parent_n his_o father_n be_v a_o soldier_n a_o centurion_n under_o the_o proconsul_n of_o afric_n call_v therefore_o by_o s._n hierom_n and_o other_o centurio_n proconsularis_fw-la not_o a_o man_n of_o proconsular_a dignity_n as_o some_o make_v he_o he_o be_v a_o gentile_a in_o which_o religion_n tertullian_n also_o be_v bring_v up_o as_o himself_o 17._o himself_o apol._n c._n 18._o p._n 17._o confess_v he_o be_v educate_v in_o all_o the_o accomplishment_n which_o the_o learning_n either_o of_o the_o greek_n or_o roman_n can_v add_v to_o he_o he_o seem_v to_o have_v leave_v no_o path_n untrace_v to_o have_v intimate_o converse_v with_o poet_n historian_n orator_n not_o to_o have_v look_v only_o but_o to_o have_v enter_v into_o the_o secret_n of_o philosophy_n and_o the_o mathematics_n not_o unseen_a in_o physic_n and_o the_o curiosity_n of_o nature_n and_o as_o eusebius_n 41._o eusebius_n h._n eccl._n l._n 2._o c._n 2._o p._n 41._o note_n a_o man_n famous_a for_o other_o thing_n but_o especial_o admirable_o skill_v in_o the_o roman_a law_n though_o they_o who_o will_v hence_o infer_v he_o to_o have_v be_v a_o profess_a lawyer_n and_o the_o same_o with_o he_o who_o excerpta_fw-la be_v yet_o extant_a in_o the_o pandect_n be_v guilty_a of_o a_o notorious_a mistake_n the_o name_n of_o that_o lawyer_n be_v tertylianus_n beside_o that_o dissonancy_n that_o be_v in_o their_o stile_n and_o language_n or_o suppose_v with_o other_o that_o this_o tertylian_a be_v one_o of_o papinian_o scholar_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o alexander_n severus_n he_o must_v by_o this_o account_n be_v at_o least_o thirty_o year_n after_o the_o other_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n the_o original_n of_o the_o error_n doubtless_o arise_v from_o the_o nearness_n and_o similitude_n of_o the_o name_n and_o the_o character_n of_o his_o skill_n in_o the_o roman_a law_n give_v by_o eusebius_n which_o indeed_o be_v evident_a from_o his_o work_n and_o especial_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o christian_n ii_o what_o be_v his_o particular_a course_n of_o life_n before_o he_o come_v over_o to_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v uncertain_a they_o that_o conceive_v he_o to_o have_v be_v a_o advocate_n and_o public_o to_o have_v plead_v cause_n because_o after_o his_o conversion_n he_o 118._o he_o de_fw-fr pall._n c._n 9_o p._n 118._o say_v of_o himself_o that_o he_o owe_v nothing_o to_o the_o forum_n take_v up_o no_o place_n among_o the_o rostra_fw-la make_v no_o noise_n among_o the_o bench_n do_v not_o toss_v about_o the_o law_n nor_o clamour_n out_o cause_n as_o if_o he_o have_v do_v all_o this_o before_o mighty_a by_o the_o same_o reason_n conclude_v he_o to_o have_v be_v a_o soldier_n because_o he_o add_v in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o he_o owe_v nothing_o to_o the_o camp_n with_o some_o other_o office_n there_o mention_v by_o he_o that_o he_o be_v marry_v be_v evident_a though_o whether_o before_o or_o after_o his_o embrace_v the_o christian_a faith_n i_o can_v positive_o determine_v probable_o before_o however_o according_a to_o the_o severity_n of_o his_o principle_n he_o live_v with_o his_o wife_n a_o great_a partof_n his_o life_n in_o a_o state_n of_o continency_n converse_v with_o she_o as_o his_o sister_n exhort_v she_o to_o perpetual_a coelibacy_n and_o the_o utmost_a strictness_n of_o a_o single_a life_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o two_o book_n write_v to_o she_o upon_o that_o subject_a iii_o his_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n we_o may_v conceive_v to_o have_v happen_v not_o long_o after_o the_o begin_n of_o severus_n his_o reign_n and_o a_o little_a before_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o second_o century_n be_v a_o man_n of_o a_o inquisitive_a and_o sagacious_a mind_n he_o have_v observe_v the_o powerful_a and_o triumphant_a efficacy_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n over_o the_o mind_n and_o life_n of_o man_n its_o great_a antiquity_n the_o admirable_a consent_n and_o truth_n of_o the_o prediction_n record_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o christian_n the_o frequent_a testimony_n which_o the_o heathen_a deity_n themselves_o give_v to_o its_o truth_n and_o divinity_n the_o ordinary_a confession_n of_o their_o daemon_n when_o force_v to_o abandon_v the_o person_n they_o have_v possess_v at_o the_o command_n of_o a_o christian_a all_o which_o he_o show_v passion_n show_v vid._n apol._n c._n 19_o 20._o p._n 18._o c._n 23._o p._n 22_o 23._o &_o alibi_fw-la passion_n at_o large_a at_o least_o as_o we_o may_v probable_o guess_v to_o have_v be_v the_o main_a inducement_n of_o his_o conversion_n in_o the_o very_a entrance_n of_o the_o follow_a seculum_fw-la severus_n be_v go_v to_o make_v war_n upon_o the_o parthian_n the_o magistrate_n at_o rome_n and_o proportionable_o the_o governor_n of_o province_n begin_v to_o bear_v hard_o upon_o the_o christian_n behold_v they_o as_o infamous_a person_n and_o especial_o traitor_n to_o the_o empire_n among_o who_o the_o most_o
of_o his_o suffering_n the_o place_n and_o manner_n of_o his_o burial_n his_o body_n first_o discover_v when_o and_o how_o the_o story_n of_o its_o translation_n to_o constantinople_n the_o miracle_n say_v to_o be_v do_v by_o his_o relic_n and_o at_o his_o memoriae_fw-la several_a report_v by_o s._n augustin_n what_o credit_n to_o be_v give_v to_o they_o miracle_n how_o long_o and_o why_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n the_o vain_a pretence_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n pag._n 1._o the_o life_n of_o s._n philip_n the_o deacon_n and_o evangelist_n his_o birth-place_n the_o confound_v he_o with_o s._n philip_n the_o apostle_n his_o election_n to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o deacon_n the_o dispersion_n of_o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n philip_n preach_v at_o samaria_n inveterate_a prejudices_fw-la between_o the_o samaritan_n and_o the_o jew_n the_o great_a success_n of_o s._n philip_n ministry_n the_o imposture_n of_o simon_n magus_n and_o his_o embrace_a christianity_n the_o christian_n at_o samaria_n confirm_v by_o peter_n and_o john_n philip_n send_v to_o gaza_n his_o meeting_n with_o the_o aethiopian_a eunuch_n what_o aethiopia_n here_o mean_v candace_n who_o the_o custom_n of_o retain_v eunuch_n in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o eastern_a prince_n this_o eunuch_n who_o his_o office_n his_o religion_n and_o great_a piety_n his_o conversion_n and_o baptism_n by_o s._n philip._n the_o place_n where_o he_o be_v baptize_v the_o eunuch_n return_n and_o propagate_a christianity_n in_o his_o own_o country_n philip_n journey_n to_o caesarea_n and_o fix_v his_o abode_n there_o his_o four_o daughter_n virgin-prophetesses_a his_o death_n pag._n 23._o the_o life_n of_o s._n barnabas_n the_o apostle_n his_o surname_n jose_v the_o title_n of_o barnabas_n whence_o add_v to_o he_o his_o country_n and_o parent_n his_o education_n and_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n his_o generous_a charity_n s._n paul_n address_n to_o he_o after_o his_o conversion_n his_o commission_n to_o confirm_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n his_o take_v s._n paul_n into_o his_o assistance_n their_o be_v send_v with_o contribution_n to_o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n their_o peculiar_a separation_n for_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gentile_n imposition_n of_o hand_n the_o usual_a rite_n of_o ordination_n their_o travel_n through_o several_a country_n their_o success_n in_o cyprus_n barnabas_n at_o lystra_n take_v for_o jupiter_n and_o why_o their_o return_n to_o antioch_n their_o embassy_n to_o jerusalem_n about_o the_o controversy_n concern_v the_o legal_a rite_n barnabas_n seduce_v by_o peter_n dissimulation_n at_o antioch_n the_o dissension_n between_o he_o and_o s._n paul_n barnabas_n his_o journey_n to_o cyprus_n his_o voyage_n to_o rome_n and_o preach_v the_o christian_a faith_n there_o his_o martyrdom_n by_o the_o jew_n in_o cyprus_n his_o burial_n his_o body_n when_o first_o discover_v s._n matthews_n hebrew_n gospel_n find_v with_o it_o the_o great_a privilege_n hereupon_o confer_v upon_o the_o see_v of_o salamis_n a_o description_n of_o his_o person_n and_o temper_n the_o epistle_n ancient_o publish_v under_o his_o name_n the_o design_n of_o it_o the_o practical_a part_n of_o it_o excellent_o manage_v under_o the_o two_o way_n of_o light_n and_o darkness_n pag._n 33._o the_o life_n of_o s._n timothy_n the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n s._n timothy_n country_n and_o kindred_n his_o religious_a education_n the_o great_a advantage_n of_o a_o early_a piety_n convert_v to_o christianity_n by_o s._n paul_n and_o make_v choice_n of_o to_o be_v his_o companion_n circumcise_a by_o s._n paul_n and_o why_o this_o no_o contradict_v s._n paul_n doctrine_n concern_v circumcision_n his_o travel_n with_o s._n paul_n for_o the_o propagation_n of_o the_o faith_n his_o return_n from_o thessalonica_n and_o s._n paul_n two_o epistle_n to_o that_o church_n s._n timothy_n consecrate_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n the_o consent_n of_o antiquity_n herein_o ordination_n in_o those_o time_n usual_o do_v by_o prophetic_a designation_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o timothy_n age_n inquire_v into_o the_o importance_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d let_v no_o man_n despise_v thy_o youth_n the_o word_n show_v to_o be_v use_v by_o the_o best_a writer_n for_o a_o considerable_a age_n s._n paul_n first_o and_o second_o epistle_n to_o he_o and_o the_o importance_n of_o they_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o ephesian_n note_v their_o festival_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d s._n timothy_n martyrdom_n the_o time_n of_o his_o death_n place_n of_o his_o burial_n and_o translation_n of_o his_o body_n his_o weak_a and_o infirm_a constitution_n his_o great_a abstinence_n and_o admirable_a zeal_n s._n paul_n singular_a affection_n for_o he_o different_a from_o timotheus_n in_o s._n denys_n the_o areopagite_n another_o timothy_n s._n paul_n disciple_n martyr_v under_o antoninus_n pag._n 45._o the_o life_n of_o s._n titus_n bishop_n of_o crete_n his_o country_n inquire_v into_o the_o report_n of_o his_o noble_a extract_n his_o education_n and_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n his_o acquaintance_n with_o and_o accompany_v s._n paul_n to_o the_o synod_n at_o jerusalem_n s._n paul_n refuse_v to_o circumcise_v he_o and_o why_o his_o attend_v s._n paul_n in_o his_o travel_n their_o arrival_n in_o crete_n titus_n constitute_v by_o he_o bishop_n of_o that_o island_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_n to_o that_o purpose_n the_o intimation_n of_o it_o in_o s._n paul_n epistle_n to_o he_o s._n paul_n censure_n of_o the_o people_n of_o crete_n justify_v by_o the_o account_n which_o gentile_a writer_n give_v of_o their_o evil_a manner_n a_o short_a view_n of_o the_o epistle_n itself_o the_o direction_n concern_v ecclesiastic_a person_n his_o charge_n to_o exhort_v and_o convince_v gainsayers_a crete_n abound_v with_o heretical_a teacher_n jewish_a fable_n and_o genealogy_n what_o and_o whence_o derive_v the_o aeones_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o ancient_a gnostic_n borrow_v from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o heathen_a poet_n this_o show_v by_o particular_a instance_n titus_n command_v to_o attend_v s._n paul_n at_o nicopolis_n his_o come_n to_o he_o into_o macedonia_n his_o follow_a s._n paul_n to_o rome_n and_o departure_n into_o dalmatia_n the_o story_n of_o pliny_n the_o younger_n be_v convert_v by_o he_o in_o crete_n censure_v his_o age_n and_o death_n the_o church_n erect_v to_o his_o memory_n pag._n 55._o the_o life_n of_o s._n dionysius_n the_o areopagite_n dionysius_n bear_v at_o athens_n the_o quality_n of_o his_o parent_n his_o domestic_a study_n his_o foreign_a travel_n egypt_n frequent_v as_o the_o staple_n place_n of_o all_o recondite_n learning_n his_o residence_n at_o heliopolis_n the_o strange_a and_o miraculous_a eclipse_n at_o our_o saviour_n passion_n dionysius_n his_o remark_n upon_o it_o his_o return_n to_o athens_n and_o be_v make_v one_o of_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o areopagus_n the_o nature_n of_o this_o court_n the_o number_n and_o quality_n of_o its_o judge_n s._n paul_n arraign_v before_o it_o his_o discourse_n and_o its_o success_n dionysius_n his_o conversion_n his_o further_a instruction_n by_o hierotheus_n hierotheus_n who_o dionysius_n constitute_v bishop_n of_o athens_n a_o brief_a account_n of_o his_o story_n according_a to_o those_o that_o confound_v he_o with_o dionysius_n bishop_n of_o paris_n these_o show_v to_o be_v distinct_a the_o original_a and_o procedure_v of_o the_o mistake_v inquire_v into_o a_o probable_a account_n give_v of_o it_o dionysius_n his_o martyrdom_n at_o athens_n and_o the_o time_n of_o it_o a_o fabulous_a miracle_n report_v of_o his_o scull_n the_o description_n of_o his_o person_n and_o the_o hyperbolical_a commendation_n which_o the_o greek_n give_v of_o he_o the_o book_n ascribe_v to_o he_o these_o none_o of_o he_o apollinaris_n probable_o show_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o they_o several_a passage_n of_o the_o ancient_n note_v to_o that_o purpose_n book_n why_o oft_o publish_v under_o other_o man_n name_n these_o book_n the_o fountain_n of_o enthusiasm_n and_o mystical_a theology_n a_o passage_n in_o they_o instance_a in_o to_o that_o purpose_n pag._n 65._o the_o life_n of_o s._n clemens_n bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o birth-place_n his_o parent_n kindred_n education_n and_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n note_v out_o of_o the_o book_n extant_a under_o his_o name_n his_o relation_n to_o the_o imperial_a family_n show_v to_o be_v a_o mistake_n his_o be_v make_v bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o great_a confusion_n about_o the_o first_o bishop_n of_o that_o see_n a_o probable_a account_n endeavour_v concern_v the_o order_n of_o s._n clemens_n his_o succession_n and_o the_o reconcile_n it_o with_o the_o time_n of_o the_o other_o bishop_n what_o account_v give_v of_o he_o in_o the_o ancient_a epistle_n to_o s._n james_n clemens_n his_o appoint_v notary_n to_o write_v the_o act_n of_o the_o martyr_n and_o dispatch_a messenger_n to_o propagate_v the_o
ourselves_o have_v be_v present_a and_o behold_v it_o may_v be_v it_o will_v only_o make_v the_o infidel_n merry_a suppose_v that_o we_o like_v themselves_o do_v forge_v and_o feign_v they_o but_o god_n bear_v witness_n with_o my_o conscience_n that_o i_o do_v not_o endeavour_v by_o falsly-contrived_n story_n but_o by_o various_a powerful_a instance_n to_o recommend_v the_o divine_a religion_n of_o the_o holy_a jesus_n more_o testimony_n of_o this_o kind_n i_o can_v easy_o produce_v from_o minucius_n faelix_fw-la cyprian_n arnobius_n and_o lactantius_n but_o that_o these_o be_v enough_o to_o my_o purpose_n xiii_o another_z advantage_n that_o exceed_o contribute_v to_o the_o triumph_n of_o christianity_n be_v the_o singular_a learning_n of_o many_o who_o become_v champion_n to_o defend_v it_o for_o it_o can_v not_o but_o be_v a_o mighty_a satisfaction_n especial_o to_o man_n of_o ordinary_a capacity_n and_o mean_a employment_n which_o be_v the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n to_o see_v person_n of_o the_o most_o smart_a and_o subtle_a reason_n of_o the_o most_o acute_a and_o refine_a understanding_n and_o consequent_o not_o easy_o capable_a of_o be_v impose_v upon_o by_o art_n of_o sophistry_n and_o plausible_a story_n trample_v upon_o their_o former_a sentiment_n and_o opinion_n and_o not_o only_o entertain_v the_o christian_a faith_n but_o defend_v it_o against_o its_o most_o virulent_a opposer_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o the_o gospel_n at_o its_o first_o set_v out_o be_v leave_v to_o its_o own_o naked_a strength_n and_o man_n of_o the_o most_o unpolisht_a breed_n make_v choice_n of_o to_o convey_v it_o to_o the_o world_n that_o it_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o humane_a artifice_n or_o the_o success_n of_o it_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o part_n and_o power_n of_o man_n but_o after_o that_o for_o a_o hundred_o year_n together_o it_o have_v approve_v itself_o to_o the_o world_n and_o a_o sharp_a edge_n be_v set_v upon_o the_o malice_n and_o keenness_n of_o its_o adversary_n it_o be_v but_o proper_a to_o take_v in_o external_a help_n to_o assist_v it_o and_o herein_o the_o care_n of_o the_o divine_a providence_n be_v very_o remarkable_a that_o as_o miracle_n become_v less_o common_a and_o frequent_a in_o the_o church_n god_n be_v please_v to_o raise_v up_o even_o from_o among_o the_o gentile_n themselves_o man_n of_o profound_a ability_n and_o excellent_a learning_n who_o may_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o julian_n 131._o julian_n theod._n h._n eccl._n l._n 3._o c._n 8._o p._n 131._o say_v of_o the_o christian_n of_o his_o time_n beat_v they_o at_o their_o own_o weapon_n and_o wound_v they_o with_o arrow_n draw_v out_o of_o their_o own_o quiver_n and_o it_o be_v high_a time_n to_o do_v so_o for_o the_o gentile_n do_v not_o only_a attaque_fw-la the_o christian_n and_o their_o religion_n by_o method_n of_o cruelty_n and_o by_o art_n of_o insinuation_n not_o only_o object_v what_o wit_n and_o subtlety_n can_v invent_v to_o bear_v any_o shadow_n and_o pretence_n of_o reason_n but_o load_v they_o with_o the_o black_a crime_n which_o nothing_o but_o the_o utmost_a malice_n and_o prejudice_n can_v ever_o suspect_v to_o be_v true_a this_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o christian_a apologist_n and_o the_o first_o writer_n against_o the_o gentile_n who_o by_o their_o learned_a and_o rational_a discourse_n assoil_v the_o christian_n from_o the_o thing_n charge_v against_o they_o justify_v the_o reasonableness_n excellency_n and_o divinity_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o expose_v the_o folly_n and_o falsehood_n the_o brutishness_n and_o impiety_n the_o absurd_a and_o trifle_a rite_n of_o the_o pagan_a worship_n by_o which_o mean_v prejudices_fw-la be_v remove_v and_o thousand_o bring_v over_o to_o the_o faith_n in_o this_o way_n they_o that_o render_v themselves_o most_o renown_a and_o do_v great_a service_n to_o the_o christian_a cause_n be_v especial_o these_o quadratus_n bishop_n of_o athens_n and_o aristides_n former_o a_o famous_a philosopher_n of_o that_o city_n a_o man_n wise_a and_o eloquent_a dedicate_v each_o a_o apologetic_n to_o the_o emperor_n adrian_n justin_n the_o martyr_n beside_o several_a tract_n against_o the_o gentile_n write_v two_o apology_n the_o first_o present_v to_o antoninus_n pius_n the_o second_o to_o m._n aurelius_n and_o the_o senate_n about_o which_o time_n also_o athenagoras_n present_v his_o apology_n to_o m._n aurelius_n and_o aurelius_n commodus_n not_o to_o mention_v his_o excellent_a discourse_n concern_v the_o resurrection_n to_o the_o same_o m._n aurelius_n melito_n bishop_n of_o sardis_n exhibit_v his_o apologetic_a oration_n for_o the_o christian_n under_o this_o emperor_n also_o flourish_v apollinaris_n bishop_n of_o hierapolis_n in_o asia_n and_o dedicate_v to_o he_o a_o incomparable_a discourse_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n beside_o five_o book_n which_o he_o write_v against_o the_o gentile_n and_o two_o concern_v the_o truth_n not_o long_o after_o theophilus_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n compose_v his_o three_o excellent_a book_n for_o the_o conviction_n of_o autolycus_n and_o miltiades_n present_v a_o apology_n probable_o to_o the_o emperor_n commodus_n tarian_n the_o syrian_a scholar_n to_o justin_n martyr_n a_o man_n learned_a and_o eloquent_a among_o other_o thing_n write_v a_o book_n against_o the_o gentile_n which_o sufficient_o evidence_n his_o great_a ability_n tertullian_n a_o man_n of_o admirable_a learning_n and_o the_o first_o of_o the_o latin_n that_o appear_v in_o this_o cause_n under_o the_o reign_n of_o severus_n publish_v his_o apologetic_n direct_v to_o the_o magistrate_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n beside_o his_o book_n ad_fw-la nationes_fw-la de_fw-fr idololatria_fw-la ad_fw-la scapulam_fw-la and_o many_o more_o after_o he_o succeed_v origen_n who_o eight_o book_n against_o celsus_n do_v not_o great_a service_n to_o the_o christian_a cause_n than_o they_o do_v honour_n to_o himself_o minucius_n faelix_fw-la a_o eminent_a advocate_n at_o rome_n write_v a_o short_a but_o most_o elegant_a dialogue_n between_o octavius_n and_o caecilius_n which_o as_o lactantius_n 459._o lactantius_n de_fw-fr instit_fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 1._o p._n 459._o long_o since_o observe_v show_v how_o fit_a and_o able_a a_o advocate_n he_o will_v have_v be_v to_o assert_v the_o truth_n have_v he_o whole_o apply_v himself_o to_o it_o about_o the_o time_n of_o gallus_n and_o volusian_n cyprian_n address_v himself_o in_o a_o discourse_n to_o demetrian_a the_o proconsul_n of_o afric_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o christian_n and_o their_o religion_n and_o publish_v his_o tract_n de_fw-fr idolorum_fw-la vanitate_fw-la which_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o epitome_n of_o minucius_n his_o dialogue_n towards_o the_o close_a of_o that_o age_n under_o dioclesian_n arnobius_n teach_v rhetoric_n with_o great_a applause_n at_o sicca_n in_o afric_n and_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n can_v hardly_o make_v the_o christian_n at_o first_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v real_a in_o evidence_n therefore_o of_o his_o sincerity_n he_o write_v seven_o book_n against_o the_o gentile_n wherein_o he_o smart_o and_o rational_o plead_v the_o christian_a cause_n as_o not_o long_o after_o his_o scholar_n lactantius_n who_o under_o dioclesian_n profess_v rhetoric_n at_o nicomedia_n set_v himself_o to_o the_o compose_v several_a discourse_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o christian_a and_o subversion_n of_o the_o gentile_a religion_n a_o man_n witty_a and_o eloquent_a but_o more_o happy_a in_o attacking_z his_o adversary_n then_o in_o establish_v the_o principle_n of_o his_o own_o religion_n many_o whereof_o he_o seem_v not_o very_o distinct_o to_o have_v understand_v to_o all_o these_o i_o may_v add_v apollonius_n a_o man_n verse_v in_o all_o kind_n of_o learning_n and_o philosophy_n and_o if_o st._n hierom_n say_v right_a a_o senator_n of_o rome_n who_o in_o a_o set_a oration_n with_o so_o brave_a and_o generous_a a_o confidence_n eloquent_o plead_v his_o own_o and_o the_o cause_n of_o christianity_n before_o the_o senate_n itself_o for_o which_o he_o suffer_v as_o a_o martyr_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o commodus_n fourteen_o and_o as_o they_o thus_o defend_v christianity_n on_o the_o one_o hand_n from_o the_o open_a assault_n and_o calumny_n of_o the_o gentile_n so_o be_v they_o no_o less_o careful_a on_o the_o other_o to_o clear_v it_o from_o the_o error_n and_o heresy_n wherewith_o man_n of_o perverse_a and_o evil_a mind_n seek_v to_o corrupt_v and_o poison_v it_o and_o the_o chief_a of_o those_o that_o engage_v in_o this_o way_n be_v these_o agrippa_z castor_n a_o man_n of_o great_a learning_n in_o the_o time_n of_o adrian_n write_v a_o accurate_a refutation_n of_o basilides_n and_o his_o principle_n in_o xxiv_o book_n theophilus_n of_o antioch_n against_o hermogenes_n and_o martion_n apollinaris_n philip_n bishop_n of_o gortyna_n in_o crete_n musanus_n modestus_n rhodon_n tatian_n scholar_n miltiades_n apollonius_n serapion_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o hundred_o more_o who_o engage_v against_o the_o
solemnity_n into_o the_o imperial_a palace_n which_o yet_o can_v not_o be_v effect_v for_o the_o sturdy_a mule_n that_o carry_v the_o treasure_n be_v come_v as_o far_o as_o constantine_n bath_n will_v not_o advance_v one_o step_n further_o and_o when_o unreasonable_o whip_v and_o prick_v they_o speak_v aloud_o and_o tell_v those_o that_o conduct_v they_o that_o the_o martyr_n be_v to_o be_v repose_v and_o inter_v in_o that_o place_n which_o be_v according_o do_v and_o a_o beautiful_a church_n build_v there_o but_o certain_o they_o that_o first_o add_v this_o passage_n to_o the_o story_n have_v be_v at_o a_o great_a loss_n for_o invention_n have_v not_o the_o story_n of_o balaams_n ass_n be_v upon_o record_n in_o scripture_n i_o confess_v 681._o confess_v bar._n ad_fw-la ann._n 439._o tom._n 5._o p._n 681._o baronius_n seem_v not_o overforward_a to_o believe_v this_o relation_n not_o for_o the_o trifle_a and_o ridiculous_a improbability_n of_o it_o but_o only_o because_o he_o can_v not_o well_o reconcile_v it_o with_o the_o time_n of_o its_o be_v first_o find_v out_o by_o lucian_n indeed_o my_o author_n tell_v we_o that_o this_o be_v do_v in_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n metrophanes_n be_v then_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o that_o it_o be_v only_o some_o part_n of_o he_o remain_v bury_v again_o by_o some_o devout_a christian_n that_o be_v discover_v in_o a_o vision_n to_o lucian_n and_o that_o the_o empress_n pulcheria_n by_o the_o help_n of_o her_o brother_n theodosius_n procure_v from_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o martyr_n right_a hand_n which_o be_v arrive_v at_o constantinople_n be_v with_o singular_a reverence_n and_o rejoice_v bring_v into_o the_o palace_n and_o there_o lay_v up_o and_o a_o stately_a and_o magnificent_a church_n erect_v for_o it_o set_v off_o with_o all_o rich_a and_o costly_a ornament_n and_o advantage_n xxvi_o 568._o xxvi_o marcell_n chro._n indict_v vii_o p._n 24._o theodor._n lect._n lib._n 2._o p._n 568._o author_n mention_n another_o remove_n ann._n ccccxxxix_n and_o let_v the_o curious_a and_o inquisitive_a after_o these_o matter_n reconcile_v the_o different_a account_n of_o his_o remains_o to_o constantinople_n by_o the_o empress_n eudocia_n wife_n to_o theodosius_n who_o have_v be_v at_o jerusalem_n upon_o some_o pious_a and_o charitable_a design_n carry_v back_o with_o she_o to_o the_o imperial_a city_n the_o remain_v of_o s._n stephen_n which_o she_o careful_o lay_v up_o in_o the_o church_n of_o s._n laurence_n the_o roman_a 284._o roman_a ad_fw-la vii_o maii_n p._n 284._o martyrology_n say_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n pelagius_n they_o be_v remove_v from_o constantinople_n to_o rome_n and_o lodge_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o s._n laurence_n the_o martyr_n in_o agro_fw-la verano_n where_o they_o be_v honour_v with_o great_a piety_n and_o devotion_n but_o i_o find_v not_o any_o author_n near_o those_o time_n mention_v their_o translation_n into_o any_o of_o these_o western_a part_n except_o the_o little_a parcel_n which_o 17._o which_o vid._n avit_fw-la ep._n praef._n ep._n lucian_n gennad_n de_fw-fr script_n eccl._n in_o oros_n c._n 39_o p._n 53._o marcell_n chron._n p._n 17._o orosius_n bring_v from_o jerusalem_n whither_o he_o have_v be_v send_v by_o s._n augustin_n to_o know_v s._n hieroms_n sense_n in_o the_o question_n about_o the_o original_a of_o the_o soul_n which_o he_o receive_v from_o avitus_n who_o have_v procure_v it_o of_o lucian_n and_o bring_v it_o along_o with_o he_o into_o the_o west_n that_o be_v into_o afric_n for_o whether_o it_o go_v any_o further_a i_o find_v not_o xxvii_o as_o for_o the_o miracle_n report_v to_o have_v be_v do_v by_o the_o remain_v of_o this_o martyr_n etc._n martyr_n deglor_n martyr_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 33._o p._n 42._o etc._n etc._n gregory_n bishop_n of_o tours_n and_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o follow_a age_n have_v furnish_v the_o world_n with_o abundant_a instance_n which_o i_o insist_v not_o upon_o superstition_n have_v be_v the_o peculiar_a genius_n and_o humour_n of_o those_o middle_a age_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o christian_a world_n miserable_o overrun_v with_o a_o excessive_a and_o immoderate_a veneration_n of_o the_o relic_n of_o depart_a saint_n however_o i_o can_v venture_v the_o reader_n displeasure_n for_o relate_v one_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o it_o be_v so_o solemn_o aver_v by_o 474._o by_o annot._n in_o martyr_n rom._n ad_fw-la aug._n iii_o p._n 474._o baronius_n himself_o s._n gaudiosus_n a_o african_a bishop_n fly_v from_o the_o vandalic_a persecution_n bring_v with_o he_o a_o glass_n vial_n of_o s._n stephen_n blood_n to_o naples_n in_o italy_n where_o it_o be_v famous_a especial_o for_o one_o miraculous_a effect_n that_o be_v set_v upon_o the_o altar_n at_o the_o time_n of_o mass_n it_o be_v annual_o wont_v upon_o the_o three_o of_o august_n the_o day_n whereon_o s._n stephen_n body_n be_v first_o discover_v to_o melt_v and_o bubble_n as_o if_o it_o be_v but_o new_o shed_v but_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o miracle_n lie_v in_o this_o that_o when_o pope_n gregory_n the_o xiii_o reform_a the_o roman_a calendar_n and_o make_v no_o less_o than_o ten_o day_n difference_n from_o the_o former_a the_o blood_n in_o the_o vial_n cease_v to_o bubble_n upon_o the_o three_o of_o august_n according_a to_o the_o old_a computation_n and_o bubble_v upon_o that_o that_o fall_v according_a to_o the_o new_a reformation_n a_o great_a justification_n i_o confess_v as_o baronius_n well_o observe_v of_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o the_o gregorian_a calendar_n and_o the_o pope_n constitution_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v ill_o do_v to_o set_v the_o kalendar_n at_o variance_n when_o both_o have_v be_v equal_o justify_v by_o the_o miracle_n but_o how_o easy_a it_o be_v to_o abuse_v the_o world_n with_o such_o trick_n especial_o in_o these_o late_a age_n wherein_o the_o artifice_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v arrive_v to_o a_o kind_n of_o perfection_n in_o these_o affair_n be_v no_o difficult_a matter_n to_o imagine_v xxviii_o let_v we_o then_o look_v to_o the_o more_o early_a age_n when_o covetousness_n and_o secular_a interest_n have_v not_o so_o general_o put_v man_n upon_o art_n of_o craft_n and_o subtlety_n and_o we_o be_v tell_v both_o by_o lucian_n and_o photius_n eleat_a loc._n an●e_v eleat_a that_o at_o the_o first_o discovery_n of_o the_o martyr_n body_n many_o strange_a miraculous_a cure_n be_v effect_v seventy_o three_o heal_v only_o by_o smell_v the_o odor_n and_o fragrancy_n of_o the_o body_n in_o some_o daemon_n be_v cast_v out_o other_o cure_v of_o issue_n of_o blood_n tumor_n ague_n fever_n and_o infinite_a other_o distemper_n that_o be_v upon_o they_o but_o that_o which_o most_o sway_v with_o i_o be_v what_o s._n augustin_n report_v of_o these_o matter_n who_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v inquisitive_a about_o matter_n of_o fact_n 5._o de_fw-fr civ_o d●i_fw-la lib._n 22._o cap._n 8._o col_fw-fr 1346._o etc._n etc._n tom._n 5._o as_o the_o argument_n he_o manage_v do_v require_v for_o be_v to_o demonstrate_v against_o the_o gentile_n that_o miracle_n be_v not_o altogether_o cease_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n among_o several_a other_o he_o produce_v many_o instance_n of_o cure_n miraculous_o do_v at_o the_o remain_v of_o s._n stephen_n bring_v thither_o as_o before_o we_o note_v by_o orosius_n from_o jerusalem_n all_o do_v thereabouts_o and_o some_o of_o they_o in_o the_o place_n where_o himself_o live_v and_o of_o which_o as_o he_o tell_v we_o they_o make_v book_n which_o be_v solemn_o publish_v and_o read_v to_o the_o people_n whereof_o at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o write_n there_o be_v no_o less_o than_o seventy_o write_v of_o the_o cure_v do_v at_o hippo_n the_o place_n where_o he_o live_v though_o it_o be_v not_o full_a two_o year_n since_o the_o memorial_n of_o s._n stephen_n martyrdom_n have_v begin_v to_o be_v celebrate_v in_o that_o place_n beside_o many_o whereof_o no_o account_n have_v be_v give_v in_o writing_n to_o set_v down_o all_o be_v to_o tire_v the_o reader_n patience_n beyond_o all_o recovery_n a_o few_o only_o for_o a_o specimen_fw-la shall_v suffice_v at_o the_o aquae_n tibilitanae_n projectus_fw-la the_o bishop_n bring_v the_o remain_v of_o the_o martyr_n in_o a_o vast_a multitude_n of_o people_n a_o blind_a woman_n desire_v to_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o bishop_n and_o some_o flower_n which_o she_o bring_v be_v lay_v upon_o they_o and_o after_o apply_v to_o her_o eye_n to_o the_o wonder_n of_o all_o she_o instant_o receive_v her_o sight_n lucillus_n bishop_n of_o synica_fw-la near_o hippo_n carry_v the_o same_o remain_v accompany_v with_o all_o the_o people_n be_v sudden_o free_v from_o a_o desperate_a disease_n under_o which_o he_o have_v a_o long_a time_n labour_v and_o for_o which_o he_o even_o then_o expect_v the_o surgeon_n knife_n eucharius_n a_o spanish_a presbyter_n then_o dwell_v at_o calama_n
of_o his_o diet_n he_o have_v weaken_v his_o appetite_n and_o render_v his_o stomach_n unfit_a to_o serve_v the_o end_n of_o nature_n insomuch_o that_o s._n paul_n be_v force_v to_o impose_v it_o as_o a_o kind_n of_o law_n upon_o he_o 5.23_o 1_o tim._n 5.23_o that_o he_o shall_v no_o long_o drink_v water_n but_o use_v a_o little_a wine_n for_o his_o stomach_n sake_n and_o his_o often_o infirmity_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o this_o weak_a totter_a carcase_n there_o dwell_v a_o vigorous_a and_o sprightly_a mind_n a_o soul_n act_v by_o a_o mighty_a zeal_n and_o inspire_v with_o a_o true_a love_n to_o god_n he_o think_v no_o difficulty_n great_a no_o danger_n formidable_a that_o he_o may_v be_v serviceable_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o interest_n of_o soul_n he_o fly_v from_o place_n to_o place_n with_o a_o quick_a speed_n and_o a_o more_o unwearied_a resolution_n then_o can_v have_v be_v expect_v from_o a_o strong_a and_o a_o healthy_a person_n now_o to_o ephesus_n then_o to_o corinth_n oft_o into_o macedonia_n then_o to_o italy_n cross_v sea_n and_o land_n and_o surmount_v a_o thousand_o hazard_n and_o opposition_n in_o all_o which_o as_o 7._o as_o loc._n citat_fw-la pag._n 7._o chrysostoms_n word_n be_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o body_n do_v not_o prejudice_v the_o divine_a philosophy_n of_o his_o mind_n so_o strange_o active_a and_o powerful_a be_v zeal_n for_o god_n so_o nimble_o do_v it_o wing_n the_o soul_n with_o the_o swift_a flight_n and_o certain_o as_o he_o add_v as_o a_o great_a and_o robu_v body_n be_v little_o better_a for_o its_o health_n which_o have_v nothing_o but_o a_o dull_a and_o a_o heavy_a soul_n to_o inform_v it_o so_o bodily_a weakness_n be_v no_o great_a impediment_n where_o there_o be_v a_o quick_a and_o a_o generous_a mind_n to_o animate_v and_o enliven_v it_o x._o these_o excellent_a virtue_n infinite_o endear_v he_o to_o s._n paul_n who_o seem_v to_o have_v have_v a_o very_a passionate_a kindness_n for_o he_o never_o mention_v he_o without_o great_a tenderness_n and_o title_n of_o reverence_n and_o respect_n sometime_o style_v he_o his_o son_n 3.2_o 1_o thess_n 3.2_o his_o brother_n his_o fellow-labourer_n timotheus_n our_o brother_n and_o minister_n of_o god_n and_o our_o fellow-labourer_n in_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n sometime_o with_o addition_n of_o a_o particular_a affection_n and_o honourable_a regard_n 1.2_o 2_o tim._n 1.2_o timothy_n my_o dear_o belove_a son_n timotheus_n who_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n and_o faithful_a in_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o the_o church_n at_o philippi_n more_o express_o i_o trust_v to_o send_v timotheus_n short_o to_o you_o etc._n philip._n 2.19_o 20_o etc._n etc._n for_o i_o have_v no_o man_n likeminded_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d equal_o dear_a to_o i_o as_o myself_o who_o will_v natural_o care_v for_o your_o state_n for_o all_o seek_v their_o own_o not_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v jesus_n christ_n but_o you_o know_v the_o proof_n of_o he_o that_o as_o a_o son_n with_o the_o father_n he_o have_v serve_v with_o i_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o because_o he_o know_v that_o he_o be_v a_o young_a man_n and_o of_o a_o temper_n easy_o capable_a of_o harsh_a and_o unkind_a impression_n he_o enter_v a_o particular_a caution_n on_o his_o behalf_n with_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n 11._o 1_o cor._n 16.10_o 11._o if_o timotheus_n come_v see_v that_o he_o may_v be_v with_o you_o without_o fear_n for_o he_o work_v the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o i_o also_o do_v let_v no_o man_n therefore_o despise_v he_o but_o conduct_v he_o forth_o in_o peace_n that_o he_o may_v come_v unto_o i_o instance_n of_o a_o great_a care_n and_o tenderness_n and_o which_o plain_o suppose_v timothy_n to_o have_v be_v a_o extraordinary_a person_n his_o very_a call_v he_o his_o dear_o belove_a son_n 1626._o son_n homil._n 1._o in_o 2_o tim._n p._n 1626._o chrysostom_n think_v a_o sufficient_a argument_n of_o his_o virtue_n for_o such_o affection_n not_o be_v found_v in_o nature_n can_v flow_v from_o nothing_o but_o virtue_n and_o goodness_n the_o lovely_a and_o essential_a ornament_n of_o a_o divine_a and_o a_o holy_a soul_n we_o love_v our_o child_n not_o only_o because_o witty_a or_o handsome_a kind_a and_o dutiful_a but_o because_o they_o be_v we_o and_o very_o often_o for_o no_o other_o reason_n nor_o can_v we_o do_v otherwise_o so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o impression_n and_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n whereas_o true_a goodness_n and_o virtue_n have_v no_o other_o art_n but_o their_o own_o naked_a worth_n and_o beauty_n to_o recommend_v they_o nor_o can_v by_o any_o other_o argument_n challenge_v regard_n and_o veneration_n from_o we_o xi_o some_z dispute_v there_o have_v be_v among_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n whether_o our_o s._n timothy_n be_v the_o same_o with_o he_o to_o who_o dionysius_n the_o areopagite_n dedicate_v the_o book_n say_v to_o be_v write_v by_o he_o and_o troop_n of_o argument_n be_v muster_v on_o either_o side_n but_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o controversy_n be_v quite_o take_v away_o with_o we_o who_o be_v sufficient_o assure_v that_o those_o book_n be_v write_v some_o hundred_o of_o year_n after_o s._n denys_n his_o head_n be_v lay_v in_o the_o dust_n however_o it_o may_v not_o be_v improper_a to_o remark_n that_o beside_o we_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n we_o be_v 31._o be_v pet._n de_fw-fr natal_n hist_o ss_z l._n 1.24_o naucler_n chron._n vol._n 2._o gener_fw-la 6._o confer_v adon._n martyr_n ad_fw-la xii_o kal._n jul._n vid._n usser_v de_fw-mi primord_v c._n 3._o p._n 31._o tell_v of_o another_o s._n timothy_n disciple_n also_o to_o s._n paul_n the_o son_n of_o pudens_n and_o priscilla_n who_o be_v say_v to_o have_v live_v unto_o a_o great_a age_n till_o the_o time_n of_o antoninus_n the_o emperor_n and_o pius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o he_o come_v over_o into_o britain_n convert_v and_o baptize_v lucius_n king_n of_o this_o island_n the_o first_o king_n that_o ever_o embrace_v the_o christian_a faith_n pius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o a_o 576._o a_o council_n tom._n 1._o col_fw-fr 576._o letter_n to_o justus_n bishop_n of_o vienna_n which_o though_o suspect_v by_o most_o be_v yet_o own_a by_o 1.2_o by_o bar._n ad_fw-la ann._n 166._o n._n 1.2_o baronius_n reckon_v he_o among_o the_o presbyter_n that_o have_v be_v educate_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o have_v come_v to_o rome_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o have_v suffer_v martyrdom_n according_o the_o 190._o the_o martyrol_n rom._n ad_fw-la mart._n 24._o p._n 190._o roman_a martyrology_n inform_v we_o that_o he_o obtain_v the_o crown_n of_o martyrdom_n under_o antoninus_n the_o emperor_n a_o story_n which_o as_o i_o can_v confute_v so_o i_o be_o not_o overforward_a to_o believe_v nor_o be_v it_o of_o moment_n enough_o to_o my_o purpose_n more_o particular_o to_o inquire_v about_o it_o the_o end_n of_o s._n timothy_n life_n the_o life_n of_o s._n titus_n bishop_n of_o crete_n michael_z burgher_n dieline_n et_fw-fr sculp_v s._n titus_n his_o country_n inquire_v into_o the_o report_n of_o his_o noble_a extract_n his_o education_n and_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n his_o acquaintance_n with_o and_o accompany_v s._n paul_n to_o the_o synod_n at_o jerusalem_n s._n paul_n refuse_v to_o circumcise_v he_o and_o why_o his_o attend_v s._n paul_n in_o his_o travel_n their_o arrival_n in_o crete_n titus_n constitute_v by_o he_o bishop_n of_o that_o island_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_n to_o that_o purpose_n the_o intimation_n of_o it_o in_o s._n paul_n epistle_n to_o he_o s._n paul_n censure_n of_o the_o people_n of_o crete_n justify_v by_o the_o account_n which_o gentile_a writer_n give_v of_o their_o evil_a manner_n a_o short_a view_n of_o the_o epistle_n itself_o the_o direction_n concern_v ecclesiastic_a person_n his_o charge_n to_o exhort_v and_o convince_v gainsayers_a crete_n abound_v with_o heretical_a teacher_n jewish_a fable_n and_o genealogy_n what_o and_o whence_o derive_v the_o aeones_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o ancient_a gnostic_n borrow_v from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o heathen_a poet_n this_o show_v by_o particular_a instance_n titus_n command_v to_o attend_v s._n paul_n at_o nicopolis_n his_o come_n to_o he_o into_o macedonia_n his_o follow_a s._n paul_n to_o rome_n and_o departure_n into_o dalmatia_n the_o story_n of_o pliny_n the_o youngers_n be_v convert_v by_o he_o in_o crete_n censure_v his_o age_n and_o death_n the_o church_n erect_v to_o his_o memory_n i._o the_o ancient_a writer_n of_o the_o church_n make_v little_a mention_n of_o this_o holy_a man_n who_o and_o whence_o he_o be_v be_v not_o know_v but_o by_o uncertain_a probability_n 1693._o probability_n h●ri●_n 1._o in_o tit_n pag_n 1693._o s._n chrysostom_n
he_o have_v bitter_o quarrel_v with_o theophilus_n this_o notwithstanding_o he_o be_v not_o affright_v from_o undertake_v he_o but_o treat_v he_o with_o all_o the_o freedom_n and_o ingenuity_n that_o become_v a_o friend_n and_o a_o philosopher_n tell_v 70._o tell_v ib._n l._n 1._o p._n 70._o he_o that_o the_o cause_n be_v in_o himself_o why_o he_o do_v not_o discern_v and_o embrace_v the_o truth_n that_o his_o wickedness_n and_o impiety_n have_v deprave_v his_o mind_n and_o darken_v his_o understanding_n and_o that_o man_n be_v not_o to_o blame_v the_o sun_n for_o want_v of_o light_n when_o themselves_o be_v blind_a and_o want_a eye_n to_o see_v it_o that_o the_o rust_n and_o soil_n must_v be_v wipe_v off_o from_o the_o glass_n before_o it_o will_v make_v a_o true_a and_o clear_a representation_n of_o the_o object_n and_o that_o god_n will_v not_o discover_v himself_o but_o to_o purge_v and_o prepare_v mind_n and_o such_o who_o by_o innocency_n and_o a_o divine_a life_n be_v become_v fit_a and_o dispose_v to_o receive_v and_o entertain_v he_o then_o he_o explain_v to_o he_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o give_v he_o a_o account_n of_o the_o origin_n of_o the_o world_n according_a to_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n disprove_v and_o deride_v the_o ridiculous_a deity_n of_o the_o heathen_n and_o particular_o answer_v those_o black_a imputation_n usual_o lay_v upon_o the_o christian_n and_o because_o autolycus_n have_v main_o urge_v the_o lateness_n and_o novelty_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n he_o show_v show_v at_o large_a how_o much_o superior_a it_o be_v in_o many_o part_n of_o it_o in_o point_n of_o seniority_n and_o that_o by_o many_o age_n to_o any_o thing_n which_o the_o heathen_a religion_n can_v pretend_v to_o press_v he_o at_o every_o turn_n to_o comply_v with_o so_o excellent_a a_o religion_n and_o assure_v he_o the_o 127._o the_o lib._n 3._o p._n 127._o people_n who_o he_o invite_v he_o to_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v such_o as_o he_o represent_v they_o that_o they_o live_v under_o the_o conduct_n of_o modesty_n and_o sobriety_n temperance_n and_o chastity_n banish_a injustice_n and_o root_v up_o all_o vice_n and_o wickedness_n love_v righteousness_n live_v under_o law_n and_o rule_n exercise_v a_o divine_a religion_n acknowledge_v god_n serve_v the_o truth_n be_v under_o the_o preservation_n of_o grace_n and_o peace_n direct_v by_o a_o sacred_a word_n teach_v by_o wisdom_n reward_v by_o a_o life_n immortal_a and_o govern_v by_o god_n himself_o what_o the_o issue_n of_o his_o discourse_n be_v we_o can_v tell_v but_o may_v probable_o hope_v they_o have_v a_o desire_a success_n especial_o since_o we_o find_v 80._o find_v lib._n 2._o p._n 80._o autolycus_n after_o the_o first_o conference_n a_o little_a more_o favourable_a to_o the_o cause_n abate_v of_o his_o conceive_a displeasure_n against_o theophilus_n and_o desire_v of_o he_o a_o further_a account_n of_o his_o religion_n and_o certain_o if_o wisdom_n and_o eloquence_n if_o strength_n of_o reason_n and_o a_o prudent_a manage_v the_o controversy_n be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o he_o can_v not_o well_o fail_v of_o reclaim_v the_o man_n from_o his_o error_n and_o idolatry_n v._n nor_o be_v he_o more_o solicitous_a to_o gain_v other_o to_o the_o faith_n than_o he_o be_v to_o keep_v those_o who_o already_o have_v embrace_v it_o from_o be_v infect_v and_o deprave_v with_o error_n for_o which_o cause_n he_o continual_o stand_v upon_o his_o guard_n faithful_o give_v warning_n of_o the_o approach_n of_o heresy_n and_o vigorous_o set_v himself_o against_o it_o for_o notwithstanding_o the_o care_n and_o vigilance_n of_o the_o good_a and_o pious_a man_n of_o those_o day_n as_o 146._o as_o h._n eccl._n l._n 4._o c._n 24._o p._n 146._o eusebius_n observe_v envious_a man_n creep_v in_o and_o sow_v tare_n among_o the_o sincere_a apostolic_a doctrine_n so_o that_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v force_v to_o rise_v up_o in_o every_o place_n and_o to_o set_v themselves_o to_o drive_v away_o these_o wild_a beast_n from_o christ_n sheep-fold_n partly_o by_o exhort_v and_o warn_v the_o brethren_n partly_o by_o enter_v the_o list_n with_o the_o heretic_n themselves_o some_o personal_o dispute_v with_o and_o confute_v they_o other_o accurate_o convince_a and_o refute_v their_o opinion_n by_o the_o book_n which_o they_o write_v against_o they_o among_o who_o he_o tell_v we_o be_v our_o theophilus_n who_o conflict_v with_o these_o heretic_n and_o particular_o write_v against_o martion_n who_o assert_v two_o deity_n and_o that_o the_o soul_n only_o as_o be_v the_o divine_a and_o better_a part_n and_o not_o the_o body_n be_v capable_a of_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o other_o world_n and_o this_o too_o grant_v to_o none_o but_o his_o follower_n with_o many_o such_o impious_a and_o fond_a opinion_n another_o book_n he_o write_v against_o hermogenes_n one_o better_a skill_v in_o paint_v then_o draw_v scheme_n of_o new_a divinity_n he_o forsake_v the_o church_n and_o flee_v to_o the_o stoy_n and_o be_v tincture_v with_o their_o principle_n maintain_v matter_n to_o be_v eternal_a out_o of_o which_o god_n create_v all_o thing_n and_o that_o all_o evil_n proceed_v out_o of_o matter_n assert_v moreover_o as_o clemens_n of_o alexandria_n d._n alexandria_n in_o excerpt_v graec._n theod._n ap_fw-mi cl._n alex._n p._n 808._o d._n inform_v we_o that_o our_o lord_n body_n be_v lodge_v in_o the_o sun_n ridiculous_o interpret_n that_o place_n in_o they_o have_v he_o set_v a_o tabernacle_n for_o the_o sun_n nor_o do_v our_o theophilus_n neglect_v the_o weak_a and_o young_a part_n of_o the_o charge_n he_o have_v not_o only_a physic_n for_o the_o sick_a and_o strong_a meat_n for_o they_o of_o full_a age_n but_o milk_n for_o babe_n and_o such_o as_o be_v yet_o unskilful_a in_o the_o word_n of_o righteousness_n compose_v many_o catechetic_a discourse_n that_o contain_v the_o first_o rudiment_n of_o the_o faith_n vi_o he_o sit_v thirteen_o year_n 311._o year_n niceph._n c._n p._n chronograph_n ap_fw-mi scalig._n p._n 311._o in_o his_o bishopric_n xxi_o say_v the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n 359._o alexandria_n eutych_n annal_n p._n 359._o and_o die_v about_o the_o second_o or_o three_o year_n of_o the_o emperor_n commodus_n for_o that_o he_o outlive_v m._n antoninus_n be_v evident_a from_o his_o mention_v 138._o mention_v ad_fw-la autol._n l._n 3._o p._n 138._o his_o death_n and_o the_o time_n of_o his_o reign_n in_o his_o discourse_n with_o autolycus_n after_o which_o he_o compose_v those_o discourse_n but_o what_o kind_n of_o death_n it_o be_v whether_o natural_a or_o violent_a be_v to_o i_o unknown_a from_o the_o calmness_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o commodus_n his_o reign_n as_o to_o any_o persecution_n against_o the_o christian_n we_o may_v probable_o guess_v it_o to_o have_v be_v a_o peaceable_a and_o quiet_a death_n book_n he_o write_v many_o whereof_o theoph._n whereof_o hieron_n 〈◊〉_d de_fw-fr script_n in_o theoph._n s._n hierom_n give_v this_o character_n that_o they_o be_v elegant_a tract_n and_o great_o conducive_a to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n and_o further_o add_v that_o he_o have_v meet_v with_o commentary_n upon_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o proverb_n of_o solomon_n bear_v his_o name_n but_o which_o seem_v not_o to_o answer_v his_o other_o write_n in_o the_o elegancy_n and_o politeness_n of_o the_o stile_n his_o write_n extant_a ad_fw-la autolycum_n libri_fw-la iii_o not_o extant_a contra_fw-la haeresin_fw-la hermogenis_n adversus_fw-la marcionem_fw-la libri_fw-la aliquot_fw-la catechetici_fw-la doubtful_a commentarii_n in_o evangelium_fw-la commentarii_n in_o proverbia_fw-la solomonis_fw-la the_o end_n of_o s._n theophilus_n be_v life_n the_o life_n of_o s._n melito_n bishop_n of_o sardis_n m._n burg._n sculp_v s._n melito_n his_o country_n and_o birth-place_n his_o excellent_a part_n and_o learning_n his_o be_v make_v bishop_n of_o sardis_n his_o coelibacy_n his_o prophetic_a gift_n the_o persecution_n under_o marcus_n aurelius_n melito_n his_o apology_n for_o the_o christian_n a_o fragment_n of_o it_o cite_v out_o of_o eusebius_n the_o great_a advantage_n of_o christianity_n to_o the_o empire_n his_o endeavour_n to_o compose_v the_o paschal_n controversy_n his_o book_n concern_v that_o subject_a his_o journey_n to_o jerusalem_n to_o search_v what_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v receive_v by_o that_o church_n the_o copy_n of_o his_o letter_n to_o his_o brother_n onesimus_n concern_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n what_o book_n admit_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n solomon_n proverb_n style_v by_o the_o ancient_n the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n his_o death_n and_o burial_n the_o great_a variety_n of_o his_o work_n unjust_o suspect_v of_o dangerous_a notion_n a_o account_n give_v of_o the_o title_n of_o two_o of_o his_o book_n most_o liable_a to_o suspicion_n his_o write_n enumerate_v i._o s_o melito_n be_v bear_v in_o asia_n and_o probable_o at_o sardis_n
industry_n after_o which_o he_o return_v to_o alexandria_n and_o the_o discharge_n of_o his_o office_n where_o how_o long_o he_o continue_v or_o by_o what_o death_n he_o die_v antiquity_n be_v silent_a certain_a it_o be_v that_o for_o some_o considerable_a time_n he_o outlive_v pantaenus_n who_o die_v in_o the_o time_n of_o caracalla_n and_o when_o he_o write_v his_o stromata_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o do_v it_o that_o he_o may_v lay_v up_o thing_n in_o store_n against_o old_a age_n a_o plain_a intimation_n that_o he_o be_v then_o pretty_a far_o from_o it_o i_o add_v no_o more_o but_o what_o alexander_n of_o jerusalem_n 216._o jerusalem_n ap._n euseb_n l._n 6._o c._n 14._o p._n 216._o say_v in_o a_o letter_n to_o origen_n where_o have_v tell_v he_o that_o their_o friendship_n which_o have_v commence_v under_o their_o predecessor_n shall_v continue_v sacred_a and_o inviolable_a yea_o grow_v more_o firm_a and_o fervent_a he_o add_v for_o we_o acknowledge_v for_o our_o father_n those_o bless_a saint_n who_o be_v go_v before_o we_o and_o to_o who_o we_o shall_v go_v after_o a_o little_a time_n pantaenus_n i_o mean_v the_o true_o happy_a and_o my_o master_n and_o the_o holy_a clemens_n my_o master_n and_o one_o that_o be_v great_o useful_a and_o helpful_a to_o i_o vi_o to_o commend_v this_o excellent_a man_n after_o the_o great_a thing_n speak_v of_o he_o by_o the_o ancient_n be_v to_o hold_v a_o candle_n to_o the_o sun_n let_v we_o hear_v the_o character_n which_o some_o of_o they_o give_v of_o he_o the_o holy_a and_o the_o bless_a clemens_n a_o man_n very_o virtuous_a and_o approve_a as_o we_o have_v see_v alexander_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n who_o know_v he_o best_o testify_v of_o he_o indeed_o his_o zeal_n and_o piety_n modesty_n and_o humility_n can_v not_o but_o endear_v he_o unto_o all_o for_o his_o learning_n he_o be_v in_o 327._o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la magn._n orat._n p._n 327._o s._n hieroms_n judgement_n the_o most_o learned_a of_o all_o the_o ancient_n a_o man_n admirable_o learn_v and_o skilful_a and_o that_o search_v to_o the_o very_a bottom_n of_o all_o the_o learning_n of_o the_o greek_n with_o that_o exactness_n that_o perhaps_o few_o before_o he_o ever_o attain_v to_o say_v 205_o say_v contr._n julian_n l._n 7._o p._n 221._o tom._n 6._o vid._n l._n 6._o p_o 205_o s._n cyril_n of_o alexandria_n a_o holy_a man_n say_v 197._o say_v haeret._n fabul_n l._n 1._o c._n 6._o p._n 197._o theodoret_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o one_o that_o for_o his_o vast_a and_o diffusive_a learning_n incomparable_o surpass_v all_o other_o man_n nor_o be_v he_o less_o accurate_a in_o matter_n of_o theology_n then_o humane_a learning_n a_o incomparable_a master_n in_o the_o christian_a philosophy_n as_o eusebius_n style_v he_o witness_v his_o many_o book_n crowd_v as_o 215._o as_o h._n eccl._n l_o 6._o c._n 13._o p._n 215._o eusebius_n tell_v we_o with_o variety_n and_o plenty_n of_o useful_a knowledge_n derive_v as_o cit_fw-la as_o de_fw-fr script_n in_o clem._n &_o ad_fw-la magn._fw-la or._n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la s._n hierom_n add_v both_o from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o secular_a learning_n wherein_o there_o be_v nothing_o unlearned_a nothing_o that_o it_o be_v not_o fetch_v out_o of_o the_o very_a centre_n and_o bowel_n of_o philosophy_n the_o title_n of_o they_o those_o two_o author_n have_v preserve_v the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o book_n themselves_o have_v perish_v among_o which_o the_o most_o memorable_a be_v the_o hypotypose_n or_o book_n of_o institution_n so_o often_o cite_v by_o eusebius_n which_o contain_v short_a and_o strict_a explication_n of_o many_o passage_n of_o holy_a scripture_n wherein_o 285._o wherein_o cod._n cix_o col_fw-fr 285._o photius_n tell_v we_o there_o be_v many_o wild_a and_o impious_a opinion_n as_o that_o matter_n be_v eternal_a and_o that_o idea_n be_v introduce_v by_o certain_a decree_n that_o there_o be_v a_o transmigration_n of_o soul_n and_o be_v many_o world_n before_o adam_n that_o the_o son_n be_v among_o the_o number_n of_o create_a being_n and_o that_o the_o word_n be_v not_o real_o make_v flesh_n but_o only_o appear_v so_o and_o many_o more_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d monstrous_a blasphemy_n but_o withal_o insinuate_v that_o probable_o these_o thing_n be_v insert_v by_o another_o hand_n as_o 195._o as_o apol._n pro_fw-la orig._n inter_fw-la oper._n hier._n tom._n 4._o p._n 195._o rufinus_n express_o assure_v we_o that_o heretic_n have_v corrupt_v clemens_n his_o write_n certain_o have_v these_o book_n be_v infect_v with_o these_o profane_a and_o poisonous_a dogmata_fw-la in_o eusebius_n his_o time_n we_o can_v hardly_o think_v but_o that_o he_o will_v have_v give_v we_o at_o least_o some_o obscure_a intimation_n of_o it_o and_o considerable_a it_o be_v what_o photius_n observe_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o countenance_v by_o his_o other_o book_n nay_o many_o of_o they_o plain_o contradict_v by_o they_o vii_o the_o book_n yet_o extant_a beside_o the_o little_a tract_n entitle_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d late_o publish_v be_v chief_o three_o which_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v write_v in_o a_o very_a wise_a and_o excellent_a order_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o exhortation_n to_o the_o gentile_n the_o paedagogus_fw-la or_o christian_a instructor_n and_o the_o stromata_n or_o various_a discourse_n in_o the_o first_o he_o very_o rational_o refute_v the_o folly_n and_o impiety_n of_o the_o gentile_a religion_n and_o strong_o persuade_v man_n to_o embrace_v christianity_n in_o the_o second_o he_o tutor_n and_o instruct_v new_a convert_v and_o by_o the_o most_o admirable_a rule_n and_o pathetical_a insinuation_n prepare_v and_o form_v they_o to_o a_o holy_a and_o true_o christian_a life_n in_o the_o three_o he_o administer_v strong_a meat_n to_o they_o that_o be_v of_o a_o more_o full_a age_n a_o clear_a explication_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o a_o more_o particular_a confutation_n both_o of_o gentile_a and_o heretical_a opinion_n admit_v the_o disciple_n after_o his_o first_o purgation_n and_o initiation_n into_o a_o more_o immediate_a acquaintance_n with_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n of_o religion_n his_o stromata_n 214._o stromata_n vid._n euseb_n l._n 6._o c._n 13._o p._n 214._o be_v nothing_o but_o miscellaneous_n discourse_v compose_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a write_n and_o the_o book_n of_o the_o gentile_n explain_v and_o as_o occasion_n be_v confute_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o barbarian_n the_o sentiment_n of_o philosopher_n the_o notion_n of_o heretic_n insert_v variety_n of_o story_n and_o treasure_n out_o of_o all_o sort_n of_o learning_n which_o as_o himself_o tell_v we_o 476._o we_o strom._n l._n 1._o p._n 278._o l._n 4._o p._n 476._o he_o therefore_o style_v stromata_n that_o be_v a_o variegated_a contexture_n of_o discourse_n and_o which_o 766._o which_o lib._n 7._o p._n 766._o he_o compare_v not_o to_o a_o curious_a garden_n wherein_o the_o tree_n and_o plant_n be_v dispose_v according_a to_o the_o exact_a rule_n of_o method_n and_o order_n but_o to_o a_o thick_a shady_a mountain_n whereon_o tree_n of_o all_o sort_n the_o cypress_n and_o the_o plantain_n the_o laurel_n and_o the_o ivy_n the_o apple_n the_o olive_n and_o the_o figtree_n promiscuous_o grow_v together_o in_o the_o two_o former_a of_o his_o book_n as_o 288._o as_o loc._n supr_fw-la cit_fw-la col_fw-fr 288._o photius_n observe_v his_o stile_n be_v florid_n but_o set_v off_o with_o a_o well_o proportion_a gravity_n and_o a_o become_a variety_n of_o learning_n in_o the_o latter_a he_o neither_o design_v the_o ornament_n of_o eloquence_n nor_o will_v the_o nature_n of_o his_o design_n well_o admit_v it_o as_o he_o true_o 767._o true_o ubi_fw-la supr_fw-la p._n 767._o apologise_v for_o himself_o his_o main_a care_n 293._o care_n ib._n l._n 1._o p._n 293._o be_v so_o to_o express_v thing_n that_o he_o may_v be_v understand_v and_o further_a eloquence_n than_o this_o he_o neither_o study_v nor_o desire_v if_o in_o these_o book_n of_o his_o there_o be_v what_o supr_fw-la what_o ubi_fw-la supr_fw-la photius_n affirm_v some_o few_o thing_n here_o and_o there_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o sound_o or_o wary_o express_v yet_o not_o as_o he_o add_v like_o those_o of_o the_o hypotypose_n but_o capable_a of_o a_o candid_a and_o benign_a interpretation_n not_o considerable_o prejudicial_a either_o to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o religion_n and_o such_o as_o be_v general_o to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o writer_n of_o those_o early_a age_n and_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o the_o good_a and_o pious_a man_n of_o those_o time_n who_o be_v continual_o engage_v in_o fierce_a dispute_n with_o heathen_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o jew_n and_o heretic_n on_o the_o other_o do_v not_o always_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d divide_v the_o truth_n aright_o in_o some_o nice_a line_n
principal_a person_n i_o doubt_v not_o be_v plautianus_n a_o man_n in_o great_a favour_n with_o the_o emperor_n who_o daughter_n be_v marry_v to_o antoninus_n the_o emperor_n elder_a son_n and_o who_o severus_n at_o his_o go_v into_o the_o east_n have_v make_v praefect_n of_o rome_n of_o he_o we_o read_v 328._o read_v dio._n cass_n h._n rom._n l._n 75._o &_o xiphil_n in_o vit._n sever._n p_o 328._o that_o in_o the_o emperor_n absence_n he_o put_v to_o death_n a_o infinite_a number_n both_o of_o the_o nobility_n and_o common_a people_n among_o who_o we_o can_v question_v but_o the_o christian_n have_v they_o and_o it_o be_v like_o the_o far_o great_a share_n and_o so_o notorious_a be_v the_o cruelty_n that_o 350._o that_o spartian_a in_o vit_fw-fr sever._n c._n 15._o p._n 350._o severus_n at_o his_o return_n be_v force_v to_o apologise_v for_o himself_o that_o he_o have_v no_o hand_n in_o it_o and_o indeed_o severus_n in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o reign_n be_v as_o tertullian_n inform_v 71._o inform_v ad_fw-la scapul_n c._n 4._o p._n 71._o we_o very_o benign_a and_o favourable_a to_o the_o christian_n for_o have_v be_v cure_v of_o a_o dangerous_a distemper_n by_o one_o proculus_n a_o christian_n who_o anoint_v he_o with_o oil_n he_o keep_v he_o at_o court_n with_o he_o ever_o after_o nor_o do_v his_o kindness_n terminate_v here_o for_o when_o he_o know_v that_o several_a both_o man_n and_o woman_n of_o the_o senatorian_a order_n be_v christian_n he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o persecute_v they_o upon_o that_o account_n that_o he_o give_v they_o a_o honourable_a testimony_n and_o restrain_v the_o people_n when_o they_o be_v rage_v against_o the_o christian_n this_o i_o suppose_v to_o have_v be_v do_v at_o his_o return_n from_o the_o parthian_a expedition_n when_o he_o find_v both_o governor_n and_o people_n engage_v in_o so_o hot_a and_o severe_a a_o persecution_n of_o the_o christian_n iv_o the_o barbarous_a and_o cruel_a usage_n which_o the_o christian_n general_o meet_v with_o engage_v tertullian_n to_o vindicate_v and_o plead_v their_o cause_n both_o against_o the_o malice_n and_o cruelty_n of_o their_o enemy_n for_o which_o purpose_n he_o publish_v and_o send_v abroad_o his_o apology_n dedicate_a it_o to_o the_o magistrate_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o especial_o the_o senate_n at_o rome_n for_o that_o he_o go_v to_o rome_n himself_o and_o personal_o present_v it_o to_o the_o senate_n i_o confess_v i_o see_v no_o convince_a evidence_n wherein_o with_o incomparable_a learning_n and_o eloquence_n with_o all_o possible_a evidence_n and_o strength_n of_o reason_n he_o plead_v their_o cause_n complain_v of_o the_o iniquity_n and_o injustice_n of_o their_o enemy_n and_o the_o method_n of_o their_o proceed_n particular_o demonstrate_v the_o vanity_n and_o falsehood_n of_o those_o crime_n that_o be_v common_o charge_v upon_o the_o christian_n argue_v their_o meekness_n and_o innocency_n their_o temperance_n and_o sobriety_n their_o piety_n to_o god_n and_o obedience_n to_o their_o prince_n the_o reasonableness_n of_o their_o principle_n and_o the_o holiness_n of_o their_o life_n beyond_o all_o just_a exception_n a_o apology_n which_o undoubted_o contribute_v towards_o the_o cool_a and_o qualify_a of_o the_o present_a calenture_n especial_o at_o severus_n his_o return_n and_o indeed_o it_o appear_v not_o by_o the_o whole_a series_n of_o that_o discourse_n that_o the_o emperor_n have_v give_v any_o particular_a countenance_n to_o those_o severity_n nay_o on_o the_o contrary_a he_o express_o style_v 5._o style_v apol._n c._n 4._o p._n 5._o he_o the_o most_o constant_a prince_n not_o long_o after_o this_o tertullian_n find_v work_v near_a home_n scapula_n the_o precedent_n and_o proconsul_n of_o afric_n the_o same_o probable_o with_o scapula_n tertyllus_fw-la a_o provincial_a precedent_n to_o who_o there_o be_v a_o rescript_n of_o marcus_n and_o commodus_n 18._o commodus_n l._n 14._o ff_n de_fw-fr offic._n praesid_n lib._n 1._o tit._n 18._o treat_v the_o christian_n much_o at_o the_o same_o rate_n that_o plautianus_n have_v do_v at_o rome_n to_o he_o therefore_o he_o address_v himself_o in_o a_o neat_a and_o pathetical_a discourse_n represent_v the_o honesty_n and_o simplicity_n of_o christian_n and_o their_o hearty_a prayer_n and_o endeavour_n for_o the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o those_o particular_a instance_n of_o severity_n which_o the_o divine_a providence_n have_v late_o inflict_v upon_o it_o which_o can_v not_o be_v reasonable_o suppose_v to_o have_v be_v send_v upon_o any_o other_o errand_n so_o much_o as_o to_o revenge_v the_o innocent_a blood_n that_o have_v be_v shed_v lay_v before_o he_o the_o clemency_n and_o indulgence_n of_o former_a prince_n and_o precedent_n yea_o and_o of_o the_o present_a emperor_n himself_o so_o great_a a_o friend_n to_o christian_n a_o plain_a evidence_n that_o this_o book_n be_v write_v at_o this_o time_n before_o severus_n break_v out_o into_o open_a violence_n against_o they_o v._o the_o christian_n now_o enjoy_v a_o little_a respite_n but_o alas_o it_o be_v but_o like_o the_o intermit_a fit_n of_o a_o fever_n which_o be_v over_o the_o paroxysm_n return_v with_o a_o fierce_a violence_n ann._n chr._n ccii_o severi_n x._o an._n x._o euseb_n chron._n ad_fw-la eundem_fw-la an._n the_o persecution_n revive_v and_o be_v now_o carry_v on_o by_o the_o command_n of_o the_o emperor_n for_o severus_n in_o his_o journey_n through_o palestin_n forbid_v 352._o forbid_v ael_n spartian_a in_o vit_fw-fr sever._n c._n 17._o p._n 352._o any_o under_o the_o heavy_a penalty_n to_o become_v jew_n and_o the_o same_o order_n he_o issue_v out_o concern_v christian_n the_o general_a pretence_n it_o be_v like_a be_v the_o prohibit_v the_o heteriae_n or_o unlawful_a society_n which_o we_o have_v elsewhere_o describe_v for_o such_o a_o rescript_n 1._o rescript_n l._n 1._o ff_n de_fw-fr offic_n praefect_n urb_v §_o 14._o tit._n 12._o lib._n 1._o ulpian_n mention_n whereby_o severus_n forbid_v the_o illegal_a college_n command_v the_o person_n frequent_v they_o to_o be_v accuse_v before_o the_o praefect_n of_o the_o city_n in_o which_o number_n they_o usual_o behold_v the_o christian_n though_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o there_o be_v as_o spartianus_n plain_o affirm_v particular_a edict_n issue_v out_o against_o they_o the_o people_n who_o can_v hardly_o be_v hold_v in_o before_o have_v now_o the_o reins_o throw_v upon_o their_o neck_n and_o spur_v on_o by_o the_o imperial_a order_n run_v apace_o upon_o the_o execution_n so_o that_o the_o church_n in_o all_o place_n 201._o place_n euseb_n h._n eccl._n l._n 6._o c._n 1._o p._n 201._o be_v fill_v with_o martyrdom_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o it_o grow_v so_o hot_a that_o 8_o that_o ibid._n c._n 6._o p._n ●_o 8_o judas_n a_o writer_n of_o those_o time_n draw_v down_o his_o chronology_n of_o daniel_n lxx_o week_n to_o this_o year_n break_v off_o his_o computation_n suppose_v that_o the_o so_o much_o celebrate_v come_v of_o antichrist_n be_v now_o at_o hand_n so_o exceed_o say_v the_o historian_n be_v the_o mind_n of_o many_o shake_v and_o disturb_v with_o the_o present_a persecution_n tertullian_n that_o he_o may_v speak_v a_o word_n in_o season_n take_v hold_v of_o the_o present_a opportunity_n and_o write_v to_o the_o martyr_n in_o prison_n to_o comfort_v they_o under_o their_o suffering_n and_o exhort_v they_o to_o constancy_n and_o final_a perseverance_n as_o also_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n and_o about_o the_o same_o time_n he_o publish_v his_o discourse_n concern_v patience_n wherein_o he_o very_o elegant_o describe_v the_o advantage_n and_o commendation_n of_o that_o virtue_n and_o especial_o urge_v it_o from_o the_o example_n of_o god_n our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o speak_v therein_o more_o favourable_o than_o he_o do_v afterward_o of_o retire_v in_o a_o time_n of_o persecution_n nor_o be_v he_o less_o watchful_a to_o defend_v and_o preserve_v the_o church_n from_o error_n and_o heresy_n write_v his_o praescription_n against_o heretic_n for_o that_o it_o be_v write_v about_o this_o time_n be_v evident_a from_o several_a passage_n especial_o where_o he_o mention_n the_o time_n of_o persecution_n the_o place_n of_o the_o tribunal_n the_o person_n of_o the_o judge_n the_o bring_v forth_o of_o lion_n and_o the_o like_a wherein_o he_o enumerate_v and_o insist_o upon_o the_o several_a heresy_n which_o have_v infest_a the_o church_n till_o that_o time_n censure_v and_o confute_v their_o absurd_a opinion_n and_o promise_v 219._o promise_v de_fw-fr prescript_n haeret._n c._n 45._o p._n 219._o a_o more_o distinct_a and_o particular_a confutation_n of_o they_o afterward_o which_o according_o he_o perform_v in_o his_o discourse_n against_o the_o jew_n against_o hermogenes_n the_o valentinian_o martion_n praxeas_n and_o some_o other_o of_o their_o proselyte_n and_o disciple_n and_o some_o of_o the_o montanist_n themselves_o write_v a_o particular_a tract_n concern_v
he_o vid._n l._n de_fw-fr menogam_fw-la c._n 1._o p._n 525._o etc._n etc._n 3._o &_o 4._o &_o passim_fw-la de_fw-fr jejun_fw-fr c._n 12._o p._n 550_o 551._o more_o than_o once_o particular_o tell_v we_o not_o to_o say_v that_o montanus_n his_o follower_n as_o be_v usual_a with_o the_o after-brood_n of_o every_o sect_n assert_v many_o thing_n which_o their_o master_n himself_o never_o dream_v of_o which_o yet_o without_o distinction_n be_v lay_v at_o his_o door_n and_o tertullian_n too_o because_o a_o favourer_n of_o the_o party_n draw_v into_o the_o guilt_n and_o make_v liable_a to_o many_o improvement_n to_o the_o hay_n and_o stubble_n which_o the_o successor_n of_o that_o sect_n build_v upon_o it_o x._o but_o however_o it_o be_v he_o stomach_v his_o excommunication_n and_o be_v high_o offend_v at_o the_o looseness_n and_o remissness_n of_o the_o discipline_n among_o the_o catholic_n who_o with_o great_a smartness_n he_o persecute_v under_o the_o name_n of_o psychici_fw-la or_o animal_n person_n as_o those_o that_o take_v too_o much_o liberty_n in_o their_o manner_n and_o practice_n of_o devotion_n still_v his_o own_o party_n spiritales_fw-la as_o who_o he_o think_v more_o immediate_o guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n more_o plentiful_o endow_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o it_o and_o conversant_a in_o a_o more_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a life_n against_o these_o psychici_fw-la he_o present_o publish_v a_o tract_n de_fw-fr jejuniis_fw-la wherein_o he_o defend_v the_o montanist_n in_o the_o observation_n of_o their_o fast_n their_o abstinence_n from_o flesh_n and_o feed_v only_o upon_o dry_a meat_n their_o stationary_a day_n and_o the_o keep_v they_o till_o the_o very_a evening_n while_o the_o orthodox_n break_v up_o they_o about_o three_o of_o the_o clock_n in_o the_o afternoon_n in_o all_o which_o respect_n he_o make_v many_o tart_a and_o severe_a reflection_n upon_o they_o indeed_o the_o devotion_n of_o those_o time_n be_v brisk_a and_o fervent_a their_o usage_n strict_a and_o punctual_a their_o ecclesiastic_a discipline_n general_o very_o rigid_a and_o extreme_a seldom_o admit_v person_n that_o have_v lapse_v after_o baptism_n to_o penance_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n but_o this_o be_v look_v upon_o by_o moderate_a and_o sober_a man_n as_o make_v the_o gate_n too_o straight_o and_o that_o which_o can_v not_o but_o discourage_v covert_n from_o enter_v in_o according_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v relax_v in_o several_a place_n and_o particular_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 555._o rome_n tert._n de_fw-fr pudic_n cit_fw-la c._n 1._o p._n 555._o have_v late_o publish_v a_o constitution_n wherein_o he_o admit_v person_n guilty_a of_o adultery_n and_o fornication_n and_o probable_o other_o crime_n to_o a_o place_n among_o the_o penitent_n against_o this_o tertullian_n storm_n cry_v up_o the_o severity_n of_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n write_v his_o book_n de_fw-fr pudicitia_n wherein_o he_o consider_v and_o dispute_v the_o case_n and_o aggravate_v the_o greatness_n of_o those_o offence_n and_o undertake_v the_o argument_n that_o plead_v for_o remission_n and_o indulgence_n and_o if_o in_o the_o mention_v this_o decree_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v style_v episcopus_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la the_o champion_n of_o that_o church_n before_o they_o make_v such_o advantage_n of_o it_o shall_v do_v well_o to_o prove_v it_o to_o have_v be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o decree_n or_o if_o it_o be_v that_o it_o be_v mention_v by_o tertullian_n as_o his_o just_a right_n and_o privilege_n and_o not_o rather_o which_o be_v infinite_o more_o probable_a tertullia_n sarcasm_n intend_v by_o he_o as_o a_o ironical_a reflection_n and_o a_o tart_a upbraid_v the_o pride_n and_o ambition_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o church_n who_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o they_o and_o begin_v as_o appear_v from_o pope_n victor_n carriage_n towards_o the_o asian_a church_n in_o the_o case_n of_o easter_n to_o domineer_v over_o their_o brethren_n and_o usurp_v a_o insolent_a authority_n over_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n and_o that_o this_o be_v his_o meaning_n i_o be_o abundant_o satisfy_v from_o 282._o from_o apud_fw-la cyprian_n p._n 282._o cyprian_n use_v the_o phrase_n in_o this_o very_a sense_n in_o the_o famous_a synod_n at_o carthage_n where_o reflect_v upon_o the_o rash_a and_o violent_a proceed_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o though_o he_o particular_o name_v not_o yet_o all_o who_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o story_n know_v who_o he_o mean_v against_o those_o who_o be_v engage_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o rebaptise_v heretic_n he_o add_v that_o as_o for_o themselves_o the_o bishop_n then_o in_o the_o synod_n none_o of_o they_o make_v himself_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n or_o by_o a_o tyrannical_a threaten_a force_v his_o colleague_n into_o a_o necessity_n of_o compliance_n since_o every_o bishop_n according_a to_o the_o power_n and_o liberty_n grant_v to_o he_o have_v his_o proper_a jurisdiction_n and_o can_v no_o more_o be_v judge_v by_o another_o than_o he_o himself_o can_v judge_v other_o xi_o whether_o ever_o he_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o catholic_a communion_n appear_v not_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o for_o the_o main_a he_o forsake_v the_o 31._o the_o august_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la c._n 86._o tom._n 6._o col_fw-fr 31._o cataphrygian_o and_o keep_v his_o separate_a meeting_n at_o carthage_n and_o his_o church_n be_v yet_o remain_v till_o s._n augustins_n time_n by_o who_o labour_n the_o very_a relic_n of_o his_o follower_n call_v tertullianists_n be_v disperse_v and_o quite_o disappear_v how_o long_o he_o continue_v after_o his_o departure_n from_o the_o church_n be_v not_o know_v s._n hierom_n tertull._n hierom_n de_fw-fr script_n in_o tertull._n say_v that_o he_o live_v to_o a_o very_a decrepit_a age_n but_o whether_o he_o die_v under_o the_o reign_n of_o alexander_n severus_n or_o before_o the_o ancient_n tell_v we_o not_o as_o neither_o whether_o he_o die_v a_o natural_a or_o violent_a death_n he_o seem_v indeed_o to_o have_v be_v possess_v with_o a_o passionate_a desire_n of_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n for_o the_o faith_n though_o have_v he_o be_v a_o martyr_n some_o mention_n will_v without_o peradventure_o have_v be_v make_v of_o it_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o church_n xii_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o a_o smart_n and_o acute_a wit_n though_o a_o little_a too_o much_o edge_v with_o keeness_n and_o satyrism_n acris_fw-la &_o vehementis_fw-la ingenii_fw-la as_o citat_fw-la as_o loc._n citat_fw-la s._n hierom_n character_n he_o one_o that_o know_v not_o how_o to_o treat_v a_o adversary_n without_o salt_n and_o sharpness_n he_o be_v of_o a_o stiff_a and_o rugged_a disposition_n a_o rigid_a censor_n incline_v to_o choler_n and_o impatient_a of_o opposition_n a_o strict_a observer_n of_o rite_n and_o discipline_n and_o a_o zealous_a asserter_n of_o the_o high_a rigour_n and_o most_o nice_a severity_n of_o religion_n his_o learning_n be_v admirable_a wherein_o though_o many_o excel_v he_o have_v no_o superior_n and_o few_o equal_n in_o the_o age_n he_o live_v in_o tertulliano_n quid_fw-la eruditius_fw-la quid_fw-la acutius_fw-la say_v 2._o say_v epist_n ad_fw-la mag._n grator_fw-la p._n 328._o t._n 2._o s._n hierom_n who_o add_v that_o his_o apology_n and_o book_n against_o the_o gentile_n take_v in_o all_o the_o treasure_n of_o humane_a learning_n 60._o learning_n commonit_fw-la adv_fw-la haeres_fw-la cap._n 24_o p._n 59_o 60._o vincentius_n of_o lyre_n give_v he_o this_o notable_a elogium_fw-la he_o be_v just_o say_v he_o to_o be_v esteem_v the_o prince_n among_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n for_o what_o more_o learned_a who_o more_o conversant_a both_o in_o divine_a and_o humane_a study_n who_o by_o a_o strange_a largeness_n and_o capacity_n of_o mind_n have_v draw_v all_o philosophy_n and_o its_o several_a sect_n the_o author_n and_o abettor_n of_o heresy_n with_o all_o their_o rite_n and_o principle_n and_o the_o whole_a circumference_n of_o history_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o study_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o his_o own_o breast_n a_o man_n of_o such_o quick_a and_o weighty_a part_n that_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o thing_n which_o he_o set_v himself_o against_o which_o he_o do_v not_o either_o pierce_v through_o with_o the_o acumen_n of_o his_o wit_n or_o batter_v down_o with_o the_o strength_n and_o solidity_n of_o his_o argument_n who_o can_v sufficient_o commend_v his_o discourse_n so_o thick_o set_v with_o troop_n of_o reason_n that_o who_o they_o can_v persuade_v they_o be_v ready_a to_o force_v to_o a_o assent_n who_o have_v almost_o as_o many_o sentence_n as_o word_n and_o not_o more_o period_n than_o victory_n over_o those_o who_o he_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o xiii_o for_o his_o book_n though_o time_n have_v devour_v many_o yet_o a_o great_a number_n still_o remain_v and_o some_o of_o they_o write_v after_o his_o withdrawment_n from_o the_o church_n his_o stile_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n abrupt_a and_o
of_o the_o empire_n he_o be_v as_o little_a to_o be_v credit_v and_o guilty_a of_o as_o notorious_a a_o falsehood_n as_o eusebius_n observe_v as_o when_o he_o affirm_v that_o origen_n be_v bear_v and_o breed_v up_o a_o gentile_a and_o then_o turn_v off_o to_o christianity_n when_o as_o nothing_o be_v more_o evident_a then_o that_o origen_n be_v bear_v of_o christian_a parent_n and_o that_o ammonius_n retain_v his_o christian_a and_o divine_a philosophy_n to_o the_o very_a last_o minute_n of_o his_o life_n whereof_o the_o book_n which_o he_o leave_v behind_o he_o be_v a_o stand_a evidence_n indeed_o 147._o indeed_o annal._n p._n 332._o edit_fw-la po●ock_n vid._n 〈◊〉_d selden_n retan_o euty●●_n sect._n 23._o p._n 147._o eutychius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n if_o he_o mean_v the_o same_o seem_v to_o give_v some_o countenance_n to_o porphyry_n report_v and_o further_o add_v that_o ammonius_n be_v one_o of_o the_o twenty_o bishop_n which_o heraclas_n then_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n constitute_v over_o the_o egyptian_a church_n but_o that_o he_o desert_v his_o religion_n which_o heraclas_n no_o soon_o hear_v of_o but_o he_o convene_v a_o synod_n of_o bishop_n and_o go_v to_o the_o city_n where_o ammonius_n be_v bishop_n where_o have_v thorough_o scan_v and_o discuss_v the_o matter_n he_o reduce_v he_o back_o again_o to_o the_o truth_n whether_o he_o find_v this_o among_o the_o record_n of_o that_o church_n or_o take_v it_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o tradition_n and_o report_n be_v uncertain_a the_o thing_n not_o be_v mention_v by_o any_o other_o writer_n but_o however_o it_o be_v it_o be_v plain_a that_o ammonius_n be_v a_o man_n of_o incomparable_a part_n and_o learning_n supr_fw-la learning_n lib._n de_fw-fr provide_v &_o fat_a ubi_fw-la supr_fw-la hierocles_n himself_o style_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o teach_v of_o god_n and_o when_o plotinus_n the_o great_a platonist_n have_v find_v he_o out_o he_o supr_fw-la he_o porphyr_n in_o vit_fw-fr plotin_n p._n ●_o plot._n n._n op●●_n praf_n porphyr_n ap_fw-mi e●_n seb_n ubi_fw-la supr_fw-la tell_v his_o friend_n in_o a_o kind_n of_o triumph_n that_o this_o be_v the_o man_n who_o he_o have_v seek_v after_o under_o he_o origen_n make_v himself_o perfect_a master_n of_o the_o platonic_a notion_n be_v daily_o conversant_a in_o the_o write_n of_o plato_n numenius_n cronius_n apollophanes_n longinus_n moderatus_n nicomachus_n and_o the_o most_o principal_a among_o the_o pythagorean_n as_o also_o of_o chaeremon_n and_o cornatus_fw-la stoic_n from_o who_o as_o porphyry_n true_o enough_o observe_v he_o learn_v that_o allegorical_a and_o mystical_a way_n of_o interpretation_n which_o he_o introduce_v into_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n iv_o beside_o our_o adamantius_n there_o be_v another_o origen_n his_o contemporary_a a_o gentile_a philosopher_n honourable_o mention_v by_o plotin_n by_o lib._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ap●d_v porphyr_n in_o vit_fw-fr plotin_n longinus_n ibid._n longinus_n ibid._n porphyry_n supr_fw-la porphyry_n lib._n de_fw-fr fat_n ubi_fw-la supr_fw-la hierocles_n 19_o hierocles_n in_o vit_fw-mi porphyr_n p._n 19_o eunapius_n 90._o eunapius_n in_o plat._n t●eol_n l._n 2._o c._n 4._o p._n 90._o proclus_n and_o other_o a_o person_n of_o that_o learning_n and_o accurate_a judgement_n that_o come_v cit_fw-la come_v ap._n porphyr_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la one_o day_n into_o plotinus_n his_o school_n the_o grave_a philosopher_n be_v ashamed_a and_o will_v have_v give_v place_n and_o when_o entreat_v by_o origen_n to_o go_v on_o with_o his_o lecture_n he_o answer_v with_o a_o compliment_n that_o a_o man_n can_v have_v but_o little_a mind_n to_o speak_v there_o where_o he_o be_v to_o discourse_v to_o they_o who_o understand_v thing_n as_o well_o as_o himself_o and_o so_o after_o a_o very_a short_a discourse_n break_v up_o the_o meeting_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o most_o learned_a man_n have_v careless_o confound_v this_o person_n with_o our_o origen_n whence_o 11._o whence_o de_fw-fr vit._n &_o script_n porphyr_n c._n 2._o p._n 11._o holstenius_fw-la wonder_v why_o eunapius_n shall_v make_v he_o school-fellow_n with_o porphyry_n who_o be_v much_o his_o junior_a who_o porphyry_n say_v indeed_o he_o know_v be_v himself_o then_o very_o young_a and_o this_o probable_o not_o at_o alexandria_n but_o at_o tyre_n where_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o where_o origen_n a_o long_a time_n reside_v so_o that_o his_o wonder_n will_v have_v cease_v have_v he_o consider_v what_o be_v plain_a enough_o that_o eunapius_n mean_v it_o of_o this_o other_o origen_n porphyry_n fellow-pupil_n not_o under_o ammonius_n at_o alexandria_n but_o under_o plotinus_n at_o rome_n indeed_o be_v there_o nothing_o else_o this_o be_v enough_o to_o distinguish_v they_o that_o the_o account_v give_v of_o origen_n and_o what_o he_o write_v by_o longinus_n by_o porphyry_n in_o the_o life_n of_o plotinus_n and_o other_o do_v no_o way_n agree_v to_o our_o christian_a writer_n v._o the_o persecution_n under_o severus_n in_o the_o ten_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n be_v now_o grow_v hot_a at_o alexandria_n laetus_n the_o governor_n daily_o add_v fuel_n to_o the_o flame_n where_o among_o the_o great_a number_n of_o martyr_n 201._o martyr_n euseb_n ib._n c._n 1._o p_o 201._o leonides_n origen_n father_n be_v first_o imprison_v then_o behead_v and_o his_o estate_n confiscate_v and_o reduce_v into_o the_o public_a exchequer_n during_o his_o imprisonment_n 2●●_n imprisonment_n id._n c._n 2_o p._n 2●●_n origen_n begin_v to_o discover_v a_o most_o impatient_a desire_n of_o martyrdom_n from_o which_o scarce_o any_o entreaty_n or_o consideration_n can_v restrain_v he_o he_o know_v the_o deplorable_a estate_n wherein_o he_o be_v like_a to_o leave_v his_o wife_n and_o child_n can_v not_o but_o have_v a_o sad_a influence_n upon_o his_o father_n mind_n who_o therefore_o by_o letter_n he_o passionate_o exhort_v to_o persevere_v unto_o martyrdom_n add_v this_o clause_n among_o the_o rest_n take_v heed_n sir_n that_o for_o our_o sake_n you_o do_v not_o change_v your_o mind_n and_o himself_o have_v go_v not_o only_o to_o prison_n but_o to_o the_o very_a block_n with_o his_o father_n if_o the_o divine_a providence_n have_v not_o interpose_v his_o mother_n perceive_v his_o resolution_n treat_v he_o with_o all_o the_o charm_n and_o endearment_n of_o so_o affectionate_a a_o relation_n attempt_v he_o with_o prayer_n and_o tear_n entreat_v he_o if_o not_o for_o his_o own_o that_o at_o least_o for_o her_o sake_n and_o his_o near_a relative_n he_o will_v spare_v himself_o all_o which_o not_o prevail_v especial_o after_o his_o father_n apprehension_n she_o be_v force_v to_o betake_v herself_o to_o little_a art_n hide_v all_o his_o clothes_n that_o mere_a shame_n may_v confine_v he_o to_o the_o house_n a_o mighty_a instance_n as_o the_o historian_n note_n of_o a_o juvenile_a forwardness_n and_o maturity_n and_o a_o most_o hearty_a affection_n for_o the_o true_a religion_n vi_o his_o father_n be_v dead_a and_o the_o 203._o the_o e●seb_n ibid._n p._n 203._o estate_n seize_v for_o the_o emperor_n use_n he_o and_o the_o family_n be_v reduce_v to_o great_a strait_n when_o behold_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n who_o peculiar_o take_v care_n of_o widow_n and_o orphan_n and_o especial_o the_o relic_n of_o those_o that_o suffer_v for_o he_o make_v way_n for_o their_o relief_n a_o rich_a and_o honourable_a matron_n of_o alexandria_n pity_v his_o miserable_a case_n liberal_o contribute_v to_o his_o necessity_n as_o she_o do_v to_o other_o and_o among_o they_o maintain_v one_o paul_n of_o antioch_n a_o ringleader_n of_o all_o the_o heretic_n at_o alexandria_n who_o by_o subtle_a artifices_fw-la have_v so_o far_o insinuate_v himself_o into_o she_o that_o she_o have_v adopt_v he_o to_o be_v she_o son_n origen_n though_o he_o hold_v his_o livelihood_n pure_o at_o her_o bounty_n will_v not_o yet_o comply_v with_o this_o favourite_n not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o join_v in_o prayer_n with_o he_o no_o not_o when_o a_o innumerable_a multitude_n not_o only_o of_o heretic_n but_o of_o orthodox_n daily_o flock_v to_o he_o take_v with_o the_o eloquence_n of_o his_o discourse_n for_o from_o his_o childhood_n he_o have_v religious_o observe_v the_o rule_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n and_o abominate_v as_o himself_o express_v it_o all_o heretical_a doctrine_n whether_o this_o noble_a lady_n upon_o this_o occasion_n withdraw_v her_o charity_n or_o whether_o he_o think_v it_o more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o christian_a rule_n to_o live_v by_o his_o own_o labour_n then_o to_o depend_v whole_o upon_o another_o bounty_n i_o know_v not_o but_o have_v perfect_v those_o study_n of_o foreign_a learning_n the_o foundation_n whereof_o he_o have_v lay_v under_o the_o discipline_n of_o his_o father_n he_o now_o begin_v to_o set_v up_o for_o himself_o open_v a_o school_n for_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o learned_a art_n where_o beside_o the_o good_a he_o do_v to_o other_o he_o raise_v a_o
renown_n and_o according_o come_v thither_o while_o pope_n zephyrin_n sit_v bishop_n of_o that_o see_v where_o he_o stay_v not_o long_o but_o return_v back_o to_o alexandria_n and_o to_o his_o accustom_a catechetic_a office_n demetrius_n earnest_o importune_v he_o to_o resume_v it_o but_o find_v the_o employment_n 217._o employment_n ibid._n c._n 15._o p._n 217._o grow_v upon_o he_o and_o so_o whole_o to_o engross_v his_o time_n as_o not_o to_o allow_v he_o the_o least_o leisure_n for_o retirement_n and_o contemplation_n and_o the_o study_n of_o the_o scripture_n so_o fast_o do_v auditor_n press_v in_o upon_o he_o from_o morning_n to_o night_n he_o take_v in_o heraclas_n who_o have_v be_v his_o scholar_n a_o man_n verse_v both_o in_o divine_a and_o humane_a study_n to_o be_v his_o partner_n divide_v the_o work_n between_o they_o the_o young_a and_o more_o untutored_a catechuman_n he_o commit_v to_o he_o the_o mature_a and_o those_o who_o have_v be_v of_o a_o long_o stand_v he_o reserve_v to_o be_v instruct_v by_o himself_o and_o now_o he_o give_v up_o himself_o to_o a_o close_o and_o more_o accurate_a study_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o that_o he_o may_v manage_v with_o the_o better_a success_n he_o set_v himself_o to_o learn_v the_o hebrew_n tongue_n the_o true_a key_n to_o unlock_v the_o door_n wherein_o as_o 201._o as_o apolog._n adv_o ruffin_n tom._n 2._o p._n 201._o s._n hierom_n probable_o intimate_v he_o be_v assist_v by_o the_o help_n of_o huillus_fw-la the_o jewish_a patriarch_n at_o that_o time_n at_o least_o in_o the_o rabbinic_n exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n a_o thing_n little_o understand_v in_o those_o time_n and_o the_o place_n he_o live_v in_o and_o to_o he_o who_o be_v now_o in_o the_o prime_n of_o his_o age_n and_o the_o flower_n of_o more_o please_a and_o delightful_a study_n no_o doubt_n very_o difficult_a and_o uneasy_a but_o nothing_o be_v hard_a to_o a_o industrious_a diligence_n and_o a_o willing_a mind_n x._o nor_o do_v his_o pain_n in_o this_o interrupt_v his_o activity_n in_o his_o other_o employment_n where_o he_o perceive_v 218._o perceive_v eus_n ib._n c._n 18._o p._n 218._o any_o of_o his_o scholar_n of_o more_o smart_n and_o acute_a understanding_n he_o first_o instruct_v they_o in_o geometry_n arithmetic_n and_o other_o preparatory_a institution_n and_o then_o bring_v they_o through_o a_o course_n of_o philosophy_n discover_v the_o principle_n of_o each_o sect_n and_o explain_v the_o book_n of_o the_o ancient_n and_o sometime_o himself_o write_v comment_n upon_o they_o so_o that_o the_o very_a gentile_n cry_v he_o up_o for_o a_o eminent_a philosopher_n the_o rude_a and_o more_o unpolished_a part_n of_o his_o auditory_a he_o will_v often_o exhort_v to_o the_o study_n of_o humane_a art_n assure_v they_o that_o they_o will_v not_o a_o little_a conduce_v to_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n many_o flock_v to_o he_o to_o make_v trial_n of_o his_o fame_a skill_n and_o learning_n other_o to_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o precept_n both_o of_o philosophy_n and_o christianity_n great_a number_n of_o heretic_n be_v his_o auditor_n some_o of_o who_o he_o convert_v from_o the_o error_n of_o their_o way_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n 228._o rest_n euseb_n ib._n hieron_n de_fw-fr scrip._n in_o ambros_n suid._n in_o voc._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d epiph_n ubi_fw-la supr_fw-la p._n 228._o ambrose_n a_o man_n of_o nobility_n and_o estate_n at_o alexandria_n have_v be_v seduce_v into_o the_o error_n of_o martion_n and_o valentinus_n be_v convince_v by_o origen_n discourse_n renounce_v his_o former_a heresy_n and_o return_v to_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o ever_o after_o become_v his_o intimate_a friend_n his_o great_a patron_n and_o benefactor_n he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o neat_a elegant_a part_n and_o be_v continual_o prompt_v origen_n to_o explain_v and_o interpret_v some_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o oft_o as_o they_o be_v together_o as_o 1._o as_o epist_n ap_fw-mi suid._n ubi_fw-la supr_fw-la p._n 390_o vid._n hieron_n ep._n ad_fw-la marcell_n p._n 129._o tom._n 1._o origen_n himself_o inform_v we_o he_o suffer_v not_o a_o supper_n time_n to_o pass_v without_o discourse_n to_o this_o purpose_n nor_o their_o very_a walk_n and_o recreation_n to_o be_v without_o they_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o night_n beside_o their_o morning_n study_v be_v spend_v upon_o these_o pious_a exercise_n their_o meal_n and_o their_o rest_n be_v usher_v in_o with_o continual_a lecture_n and_o both_o night_n and_o day_n where_o prayer_n end_v read_v begin_v as_o after_o read_v they_o again_o betake_v themselves_o to_o prayer_n indeed_o this_o ambrose_n be_v a_o pious_a and_o good_a man_n and_o though_o so_o great_a a_o person_n do_v not_o disdain_v to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o office_n of_o a_o deacon_n in_o the_o church_n nay_o to_o undergo_v great_a hardship_n and_o suffering_n become_v a_o eminent_a confessor_n for_o the_o faith_n and_o there_o be_v only_o this_o blot_n ambrof_o blot_n hieron_n de_fw-fr script_n in_o ambrof_o that_o i_o know_v of_o that_o stick_v upon_o his_o memory_n that_o when_o he_o die_v rich_a he_o remember_v not_o his_o dear_a and_o ancient_a friend_n who_o low_a and_o mean_a condition_n may_v well_o have_v admit_v as_o his_o pain_n and_o intimacy_n may_v deserve_o have_v challenge_v a_o bountiful_a legacy_n to_o have_v be_v bequeath_v to_o he_o xi_o about_o this_o time_n come_v a_o 221._o a_o euseb_n ibid._n c._n 19_o p._n 221._o messenger_n from_o the_o governor_n of_o arabia_n with_o letter_n to_o demetrius_n the_o bishop_n and_o to_o the_o praefect_n of_o egypt_n desire_v that_o with_o all_o speed_n origen_n may_v be_v send_v to_o impart_v the_o christian_a doctrine_n to_o he_o so_o considerable_a have_v the_o fame_n of_o this_o great_a man_n render_v he_o abroad_o in_o foreign_a nation_n according_o he_o go_v into_o arabia_n where_o have_v dispatch_v his_o errand_n he_o come_v back_o to_o alexandria_n not_o long_o after_o who_o return_n the_o emperor_n caracalla_n draw_v his_o army_n into_o those_o part_n intend_v to_o fall_v severe_o upon_o that_o city_n to_o avoid_v who_o rage_n and_o cruelty_n origen_n think_v good_a to_o withdraw_v himself_o and_o not_o know_v any_o place_n in_o egypt_n that_o can_v afford_v he_o shelter_n he_o retire_v into_o palestin_n and_o fix_v his_o residence_n at_o caesarea_n where_o his_o excellent_a ability_n be_v soon_o take_v notice_n of_o he_o be_v request_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o those_o part_n though_o but_o then_o in_o the_o capacity_n of_o a_o laic_a public_o in_o the_o church_n and_o before_o themselves_o to_o expound_v the_o scripture_n to_o the_o people_n the_o news_n hereof_o be_v present_o carry_v to_o alexandria_n and_o high_o resent_v by_o demetrius_n who_o by_o letter_n expostulate_v the_o case_n with_o theoctistus_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n and_o alexander_n of_o jerusalem_n as_o a_o thing_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o in_o the_o christian_a church_n who_o in_o their_o answer_n put_v he_o in_o mind_n that_o this_o have_v be_v no_o such_o unusual_a thing_n whereof_o they_o give_v he_o particular_a instance_n all_o which_o satisfy_v not_o demetrius_n who_o by_o letter_n command_v origen_n to_o return_v and_o send_v deacon_n on_o purpose_n to_o urge_v he_o to_o it_o whereupon_o he_o come_v back_o and_o apply_v himself_o to_o his_o wont_a charge_n xii_o alexander_z severus_n the_o present_a emperor_n in_o order_n to_o his_o expedition_n against_o the_o persian_n be_v come_v to_o antioch_n attend_v with_o his_o mother_n mammaea_n a_o wise_a and_o prudent_a and_o say_v 830._o say_v ibid._n c._n 21._o p._n 223._o vid._n excerpt_v ex_fw-la jo._n antioch_n p._n 830._o eusebius_n a_o most_o pious_a and_o religious_a princess_n a_o great_a influence_n she_o have_v upon_o her_o son_n who_o she_o engage_v in_o a_o most_o strict_a and_o constant_a administration_n of_o justice_n and_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o empire_n that_o he_o may_v have_v no_o leisure_n to_o be_v debauch_v by_o vice_n and_o luxury_n indeed_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n of_o incomparable_a virtue_n historian_n represent_v he_o as_o mild_a and_o gentle_a compassionate_a and_o charitable_a sober_a and_o temperate_a just_a and_o impartial_a devout_a and_o pious_a one_o advance_v to_o the_o empire_n for_o the_o recovery_n and_o happiness_n of_o mankind_n he_o be_v no_o enemy_n to_o christian_n who_o he_o do_v not_o only_o not_o persecute_v but_o favour_n at_o every_o turn_n and_o in_o his_o private_a oratory_n he_o have_v among_o other_o hero_n the_o image_n of_o abraham_n and_o of_o christ_n and_o be_v once_o mind_v to_o have_v build_v a_o temple_n to_o he_o and_o public_o admit_v he_o into_o the_o number_n of_o their_o god_n he_o high_o admire_v some_o precept_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o from_o their_o discipline_n learn_v some_o rite_n
full_a and_o solid_a answer_n in_o eight_o book_n wherein_o as_o he_o have_v the_o better_a cause_n so_o he_o manage_v it_o with_o that_o strength_n of_o reason_n clearness_n of_o argument_n and_o convictive_a evidence_n of_o truth_n that_o be_v there_o nothing_o else_o to_o testify_v the_o ability_n of_o this_o great_a man_n this_o book_n alone_o be_v enough_o to_o do_v it_o it_o be_v write_v probable_o about_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o philip_n the_o emperor_n with_o who_o origen_n seem_v to_o have_v have_v some_o acquaintance_n who_o 233_o who_o id._n ibid._n p._n 233_o write_v one_o letter_n to_o he_o and_o another_o to_o the_o empress_n from_o whence_o and_o some_o other_o little_a probability_n eusebius_n first_o and_o after_o he_o the_o generality_n of_o ecclesiastic_a writer_n have_v make_v that_o emperor_n to_o have_v be_v a_o christian_a and_o the_o first_o of_o the_o imperial_a line_n that_o be_v so_o the_o vanity_n of_o which_o mistake_n and_o the_o original_n from_o whence_o it_o spring_v we_o have_v show_v elsewhere_o nor_o be_v the_o matter_n mend_v by_o those_o who_o say_v that_o philip_n be_v private_o baptize_v by_o fabian_n bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o so_o his_o christian_a profession_n be_v know_v only_o to_o the_o christian_n but_o conceal_v from_o the_o gentile_n which_o be_v but_o a_o conjecture_n and_o a_o gratis_n dictum_fw-la without_o any_o authority_n to_o confirm_v it_o may_v with_o the_o same_o ease_n and_o as_o much_o justice_n be_v reject_v as_o it_o be_v obtrude_v and_o impose_v upon_o we_o nor_o have_v the_o late_a learned_a publisher_n 4_o publisher_n rod._n wetsteinius_n praefat._n in_o orig._n dial._n contr_n marc._n etc._n etc._n à_fw-la se_fw-la edit_fw-la basil_n 1674._o 4_o of_o some_o tract_n of_o origen_n who_o in_o order_n to_o the_o secure_v the_o dialogue_n against_o the_o marcionite_n to_o belong_v to_o origen_n have_v new_o enforce_v this_o argument_n say_v any_o thing_n that_o may_v persuade_v a_o wise_a man_n to_o believe_v a_o story_n so_o improbable_a in_o all_o its_o circumstance_n and_o which_o must_v have_v make_v a_o loud_a noise_n in_o the_o world_n and_o have_v have_v more_o and_o better_a witness_n to_o attest_v it_o than_o a_o obscure_a and_o uncertain_a report_n the_o only_a authority_n which_o eusebius_n who_o give_v the_o first_o hint_n of_o it_o pretend_v in_o this_o matter_n xxi_o the_o good_a success_n which_o origen_n late_o have_v in_o arabia_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o beryllus_n make_v he_o famous_a in_o all_o those_o part_n and_o his_o help_n be_v now_o again_o 37._o again_o ibid._n c._n 37._o desire_v upon_o a_o like_a occasion_n for_o a_o sort_n of_o herety_n be_v start_v up_o who_o affirm_v that_o at_o death_n both_o body_n and_o soul_n do_v expire_v together_o and_o be_v resolve_v into_o the_o same_o state_n of_o corruption_n and_o that_o at_o the_o resurrection_n they_o shall_v revive_v and_o rise_v together_o to_o eternal_a life_n for_o this_o purpose_n a_o general_a synod_n of_o those_o part_n be_v call_v and_o origen_n desire_v to_o be_v present_a at_o it_o who_o manage_v the_o cause_n with_o such_o weighty_a argument_n such_o unanswerable_a and_o clear_a conviction_n that_o the_o adverse_a party_n throw_v down_o their_o weapon_n and_o relinquish_v the_o sentiment_n which_o they_o maintain_v before_o another_o heretical_a crew_n appear_v at_o this_o time_n in_o the_o east_n the_o impious_a and_o abominable_a sect_n of_o the_o helcesaitae_n against_o who_o also_o origen_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v engage_v concern_v who_o himself_o 233._o himself_o homil._n in_o psal_n 82._o ap_fw-mi euseb_n ibid._n c._n 38._o p._n 233._o give_v we_o this_o account_n they_o reject_v a_o great_a part_n both_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a canon_n make_v use_n only_o of_o some_o few_o part_n of_o scripture_n and_o such_o without_o question_n as_o they_o can_v make_v look_v most_o favourable_o upon_o their_o cause_n s._n paul_n they_o whole_o reject_v and_o hold_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a and_o indifferent_a to_o deny_v the_o faith_n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o wise_a man_n that_o in_o his_o word_n will_v renounce_v christianity_n in_o a_o time_n of_o danger_n and_o persecution_n but_o maintain_v the_o truth_n in_o his_o heart_n they_o carry_v a_o book_n about_o with_o they_o which_o they_o affirm_v to_o have_v be_v immediate_o drop_v down_o from_o heaven_n which_o whoever_o receive_v and_o give_v credit_n to_o shall_v receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n though_o different_a from_o that_o pardon_n which_o our_o lord_n jesus_n bestow_v upon_o his_o follower_n but_o how_o far_o origen_n be_v concern_v against_o this_o absurd_a and_o senseless_a generation_n be_v to_o i_o unknown_a the_o best_a on_o it_o be_v this_o sect_n like_o a_o blaze_a comet_n though_o its_o influence_n be_v malignant_a and_o pestilential_a sudden_o arise_v and_o as_o sudden_o disappear_v xxii_o philip_z the_o emperor_n be_v slay_v by_o the_o soldier_n decius_n make_v a_o shift_n by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o army_n to_o step_v into_o the_o throne_n a_o mortal_a enemy_n to_o the_o 234._o the_o ibid._n ●_o 3●_n p._n 234._o church_n in_o who_o short_a reign_n more_o martyr_n especial_o man_n of_o note_n and_o eminency_n come_v to_o the_o stake_n then_o in_o those_o who_o govern_v that_o empire_n ten_o time_n his_o reign_n in_o palaestin_n alexander_n the_o age_a and_o venerable_a bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v throw_v into_o prison_n where_o after_o long_a and_o hard_a usage_n and_o a_o illustrious_a confession_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n before_o the_o public_a tribunal_n he_o die_v this_o alexander_n who_o we_o have_v often_o mention_v have_v be_v first_o bishop_n in_o cappadocia_n 212._o cappadocia_n ibid._n c._n 11._o p._n 212._o where_o out_o of_o a_o religious_a curiosity_n he_o have_v resolve_v upon_o a_o pilgrimage_n to_o jerusalem_n to_o visit_v the_o holy_a and_o venerable_a antiquity_n of_o that_o place_n whereto_o he_o be_v particular_o excite_v by_o a_o divine_a revelation_n intimate_v to_o he_o that_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v assistant_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o place_n it_o happen_v at_o this_o time_n that_o narcissus_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v some_o year_n since_o return_v to_o his_o see_n which_o he_o have_v desert_v many_o year_n before_o be_v become_v incapable_a through_o his_o great_a age_n and_o infirmity_n be_v cxvi_o year_n old_a due_o to_o manage_v his_o charge_n alexander_n approach_v near_o jerusalem_n they_o be_v warn_v by_o a_o vision_n and_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n to_o go_v out_o of_o the_o city_n and_o there_o receive_v he_o who_o heaven_n have_v design_v to_o be_v their_o bishop_n they_o do_v so_o and_o find_v alexander_n entertain_v and_o introduce_v he_o with_o all_o possible_a kindness_n and_o respect_n where_o by_o the_o importunity_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o neighbour-bishop_n he_o be_v constrain_v to_o become_v colleague_n with_o narcissus_n in_o the_o government_n of_o that_o church_n this_o i_o suppose_v be_v the_o first_o express_v instance_n that_o we_o meet_v with_o in_o church-antiquity_n of_o two_o bishop_n sit_v at_o once_o and_o that_o by_o consent_n in_o one_o see_n but_o the_o case_n be_v warrant_v by_o a_o extraordinary_a authority_n beside_o that_o narcissus_n seem_v rather_o to_o have_v resign_v and_o quit_v the_o place_n retain_v nothing_o but_o the_o title_n nor_o intermeddle_v any_o further_a then_o by_o join_v in_o prayer_n and_o devotion_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n survive_v not_o above_o three_o or_o four_o year_n at_o most_o alexander_n succeed_v in_o the_o sole_a presidency_n govern_v his_o church_n with_o singular_a prudence_n and_o fidelity_n and_o among_o other_o memorable_a act_n erect_v a_o library_n at_o jerusalem_n 222._o jerusalem_n ibid._n c._n 20._o p._n 222._o which_o he_o especial_o store_v with_o ecclesiastical_a epistle_n and_o record_n from_o whence_o eusebius_n confess_v he_o furnish_v himself_o with_o many_o considerable_a memoir_n and_o material_n for_o the_o compose_n of_o his_o history_n he_o sit_v bishop_n thirty-nine_o year_n and_o after_o several_a arraignment_n and_o various_a imprisonment_n and_o suffering_n die_v now_o in_o prison_n at_o caesarea_n to_o the_o unconceivable_a loss_n and_o resentment_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o especial_o of_o origen_n who_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o he_o and_o who_o he_o have_v ever_o find_v a_o fast_a friend_n and_o patron_n nor_o do_v origen_n himself_o who_o be_v at_o this_o time_n at_o tyre_n escape_v without_o his_o share_n eusebius_n do_v but_o brief_o intimate_v his_o suffering_n have_v give_v a_o large_a account_n of_o they_o in_o another_o book_n long_o since_o lose_v he_o tell_v 234._o tell_v ubi_fw-la supr_fw-la p._n 234._o we_o that_o the_o devil_n muster_v up_o all_o his_o force_n against_o he_o and_o assault_v he_o with_o all_o
plea_n represent_v with_o all_o the_o advantage_n with_o which_o wit_n reason_n and_o eloquence_n can_v set_v they_o off_o xxvii_o nor_o want_v there_o of_o old_a those_o who_o stand_v up_o to_o plead_v and_o defend_v his_o cause_n especial_o pamphilus_n the_o martyr_n and_o eusebius_n who_o publish_v a_o apology_n in_o six_o book_n in_o his_o behalf_n the_o first_o five_o whereof_o be_v write_v by_o pamphilus_n with_o eusebius_n his_o assistance_n while_o they_o be_v in_o prison_n the_o last_o finish_v and_o add_v by_o eusebius_n after_o the_o other_o martyrdom_n beside_o which_o 297._o which_o cod._n cxviii_o col_fw-fr 297._o photius_n tell_v we_o there_o be_v many_o other_o famous_a man_n in_o those_o time_n who_o write_v apology_n for_o he_o he_o give_v we_o a_o particular_a account_n 293._o account_n cod._n cxvii_o col_fw-fr 293._o of_o one_o though_o without_o a_o name_n where_o in_o five_o book_n the_o author_n endeavour_v to_o justify_v origen_n as_o sound_v and_o orthodox_n and_o cite_v dionysius_n demetrius_n and_o clemens_n all_o of_o alexandria_n and_o several_a other_o to_o give_v in_o evidence_n for_o he_o the_o main_a of_o these_o apology_n be_v perish_v long_o ago_o otherwise_o probable_o origen_n cause_n may_v appear_v with_o a_o better_a face_n see_v we_o have_v now_o nothing_o but_o his_o notion_n dress_v up_o and_o gloss_v by_o his_o profess_a enemy_n and_o many_o thing_n ascribe_v to_o he_o which_o he_o never_o own_v but_o be_v coin_v by_o his_o pretend_a follower_n for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o shall_v only_o note_v from_o the_o ancient_n some_o general_a remark_n which_o may_v be_v plead_v in_o abatement_n of_o the_o rigour_n and_o severity_n of_o the_o sentence_n usual_o pass_v upon_o he_o and_o first_o many_o thing_n be_v say_v and_o write_v by_o he_o not_o positive_o and_o dogmatical_o but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v the_o 296._o the_o ibid._n col_fw-fr 296._o author_n of_o his_o apology_n in_o photius_n by_o way_n of_o exercitation_n and_o this_o he_o himself_o be_v wont_a to_o plead_v at_o every_o turn_n and_o to_o beg_v the_o reader_n pardon_v and_o profess_v that_o he_o propound_v these_o thing_n not_o as_o doctrine_n but_o as_o disputable_a problem_n and_o with_o a_o design_n to_o search_v and_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n as_o 172._o as_o apolog._n ap_fw-mi hieron_n tom._n 4._o p._n 172._o pamphilus_n assure_v we_o and_o s._n hierom_n himself_o 2._o himself_o ad_fw-la avit_fw-la p._n 151._o tom._n 2._o can_v but_o confess_v and_o if_o we_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o neither_o there_o be_v enough_o to_o this_o purpose_n in_o his_o book_n still_o extant_a to_o put_v it_o beyond_o all_o just_a exception_n thus_o discourse_v concern_v the_o union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o the_o person_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n he_o affirm_v 698._o affirm_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d l._n 2._o c._n 6._o p._n 698._o it_o to_o be_v a_o mystery_n which_o not_o create_v understanding_n can_v sufficient_o explain_v concern_v which_o say_v he_o not_o from_o any_o rashness_n of_o we_o but_o only_o as_o the_o order_n of_o discourse_n require_v we_o shall_v brief_o speak_v rather_o what_o our_o faith_n contain_v than_o what_o humane_a reason_n be_v wont_a to_o assert_v produce_v rather_o our_o own_o conjecture_n than_o any_o plain_a and_o peremptory_a affirmation_n and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n he_o express_v himself_o at_o every_o turn_n not_o to_o say_v that_o he_o write_v many_o thing_n in_o the_o heat_n of_o disputation_n which_o it_o may_v be_v his_o cool_a and_o more_o consider_v thought_n will_v have_v set_v right_o so_o the_o apologist_n in_o photius_n 296._o photius_n cod._n cxvii_o col_fw-fr 296._o plead_v that_o whatever_o he_o say_v amiss_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n proceed_v mere_o from_o a_o vehement_a opposition_n of_o sabellius_n who_o confound_v the_o number_n and_o difference_n of_o person_n and_o who_o sect_n be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o prevail_a heresy_n of_o that_o time_n the_o confutation_n whereof_o make_v he_o attempt_v a_o great_a difference_n and_o distinction_n in_o the_o person_n than_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n do_v strict_o allow_v second_o those_o book_n of_o he_o 177._o he_o pamph._n apol._n ubi_fw-la supr_fw-la p._n 174_o 177._o wherein_o he_o betray_v the_o most_o unsound_a and_o unwarrantable_a notion_n be_v write_v private_o and_o with_o no_o intention_n of_o be_v make_v public_a but_o as_o secret_n communicable_a among_o friend_n and_o not_o as_o doctrine_n to_o disturb_v the_o church_n and_o this_o he_o free_o acknowledge_v in_o his_o letter_n to_o fabian_n 〈◊〉_d fabian_n ap._n hieron_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la pammach_n de_fw-fr err_v orig._n p._n 193._o 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o cast_v the_o blame_n upon_o his_o friend_n ambrose_n quod_fw-la secretò_fw-la edita_fw-la in_o publicum_fw-la protulerit_fw-la that_o he_o have_v publish_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o mean_v shall_v go_v no_o further_o than_o the_o breast_n or_o hand_n of_o his_o dear_a friend_n and_o there_o be_v always_o allow_v a_o great_a freedom_n and_o latitude_n in_o debate_v thing_n among_o friend_n the_o secret_n whereof_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v divulge_v nor_o the_o public_a make_v judge_n of_o that_o innocent_a liberty_n which_o be_v take_v within_o man_n private_a wall_n three_o the_o disallow_v opinion_n that_o he_o maintain_v be_v many_o of_o they_o such_o as_o be_v not_o the_o catholic_a and_o determine_v doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n not_o define_v by_o synod_n nor_o dispute_v by_o divine_n but_o either_o philosophical_a or_o speculation_n which_o have_v not_o be_v think_v on_o before_o and_o which_o he_o himself_o at_o every_o turn_n cautious_o distinguish_v from_o those_o proposition_n which_o be_v entertain_v by_o the_o common_a and_o current_a consent_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n sure_o i_o be_o he_o lay_v it_o down_o as_o a_o fundamental_a maxim_n in_o the_o very_a entrance_n upon_o that_o 665._o that_o praef._n ad_fw-la lib._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 665._o book_n wherein_o his_o most_o dangerous_a assertion_n be_v contain_v that_o those_o ecclesiastic_a doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v preserve_v which_o have_v be_v successive_o deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o be_v then_o receive_v and_o that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v embrace_v for_o truth_n that_o any_o way_n differ_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n xxviii_o four_o divers_a of_o origen_n work_n have_v be_v corrupt_v and_o interpolate_v by_o evil_a hand_n and_o heretic_n to_o add_v a_o lustre_n and_o authority_n to_o their_o opinion_n by_o the_o veneration_n of_o so_o great_a a_o name_n have_v insert_v their_o own_o assertion_n or_o alter_v he_o and_o make_v he_o speak_v their_o language_n a_o argument_n which_o however_o laugh_v at_o by_o s._n hierom_n supr_fw-la hierom_n ad_fw-la ●ammath_n ubi_fw-la supr_fw-la be_v yet_o stiff_o maintain_v by_o rufinus_n 188._o rufinus_n apol._n pro_fw-la orig._n apud_fw-la hier._n tom._n 4._o p._n 194_o 195._o etc._n etc._n &_o praef._n ad_fw-la lib._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ib._n tom._n 2._o p._n 188._o who_o show_v this_o to_o have_v be_v a_o old_a and_o common_a art_n of_o heretic_n and_o that_o they_o deal_v thus_o with_o the_o writing_n of_o clemens_n romanus_n of_o clemens_n and_o dionysius_n of_o alexandria_n of_o athanasius_n hilary_n cyprian_n and_o many_o more_o dionysius_n 145._o dionysius_n ap._n euseb_n h._n eccl._n l._n 4._o c._n 23._o p._n 145._o the_o famous_a bishop_n of_o corinth_n who_o live_v many_o year_n before_o origen_n assure_v we_o he_o be_v serve_v at_o this_o rate_n that_o at_o the_o request_n of_o the_o brethren_n he_o have_v write_v several_a epistle_n but_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o emissary_n of_o the_o devil_n have_v fill_v they_o with_o weed_n and_o tare_n expunge_v some_o thing_n and_o add_v other_o the_o apologist_n in_o photius_n supr_fw-la photius_n ubi_fw-la supr_fw-la tell_v we_o origen_n himself_o complain_v of_o this_o in_o his_o life_n time_n and_o so_o indeed_o he_o do_v in_o his_o 195._o his_o ap._n ruffin_n i●_n tom._n 4._o p._n 195._o letter_n to_o they_o of_o alexandria_n where_o he_o smart_o resent_v that_o charge_n of_o blasphemy_n have_v be_v ascribe_v to_o he_o and_o his_o doctrine_n of_o which_o he_o be_v never_o guilty_a and_o that_o it_o be_v less_o wonder_n if_o his_o doctrine_n be_v adulterate_v when_o the_o great_a s._n paul_n can_v not_o escape_v their_o hand_n he_o tell_v they_o of_o a_o eminent_a heretic_n that_o have_v take_v a_o copy_n of_o a_o dispute_n which_o he_o have_v have_v with_o he_o do_v afterward_o cut_v off_o and_o add_v what_o he_o please_v and_o change_v it_o into_o another_o thing_n carry_v it_o about_o with_o he_o and_o glory_v in_o it_o and_o when_o some_o friend_n in_o palestin_n send_v it_o to_o he_o then_o at_o athens_n he_o return_v they_o a_o true_a
and_o authentic_a copy_n of_o it_o and_o the_o same_o foul_a play_n he_o let_v they_o know_v he_o have_v meet_v with_o in_o other_o place_n as_o at_z ephesus_z and_o at_o antioch_n as_o he_o there_o particular_o relate_v and_o if_o they_o dare_v do_v this_o while_n he_o be_v yet_o alive_a and_o able_a as_o he_o do_v to_o right_v himself_o what_o may_v we_o think_v they_o will_v do_v after_o his_o death_n when_o there_o be_v none_o to_o control_v they_o and_o upon_o this_o account_n most_o of_o those_o assertion_n must_v especial_o be_v discharge_v wherein_o origen_n be_v make_v to_o contradict_v himself_o it_o be_v high_o improbable_a as_o rufinus_n 194._o rufinus_n loc._n cit_fw-la p._n 194._o well_o urge_v that_o so_o prudent_a and_o learned_a a_o person_n one_o far_a enough_o from_o be_v either_o fool_n or_o mad_a man_n shall_v write_v thing_n so_o contrary_a and_o repugnant_a to_o one_o another_o and_o that_o not_o only_o in_o divers_a but_o in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o book_n xxix_o i_o may_v further_o observe_v his_o constant_a zeal_n against_o heretic_n his_o oppose_a and_o refute_v of_o they_o wherever_o he_o come_v both_o by_o word_n and_o writing_n his_o be_v send_v for_o into_o foreign_a country_n to_o convince_v gainsayer_n his_o profess_v to_o abominate_a all_o heretical_a doctrine_n and_o his_o refuse_v so_o much_o as_o to_o communicate_v in_o prayer_n with_o paul_n the_o heretic_n of_o antioch_n though_o his_o whole_a maintenance_n do_v depend_v upon_o it_o and_o methinks_v it_o deserve_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o athanasius_n in_o all_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o arrian_n controversy_n than_o who_o certain_o none_n be_v ever_o more_o diligent_a to_o search_v out_o heretical_a person_n and_o opinion_n or_o more_o accurate_a in_o examine_v and_o refute_v the_o chief_a of_o those_o doctrine_n that_o be_v lay_v at_o origen_n door_n shall_v never_o charge_v he_o upon_o that_o account_n nay_o he_o particular_o quote_v he_o 320._o he_o decret_n synod_n nic._n contr_n haeres_fw-la arrian_n p._n 277._o t._n 1._o vid._n de_fw-fr blasph_n in_o s._n s._n p._n 971._o &_o socr._n h_o e._n l._n 6._o c._n 13._o p._n 320._o to_o to_o prove_v our_o lord_n coeternity_n and_o coessentiality_n with_o the_o father_n exact_o according_a to_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o nicene_n synod_n dismiss_v he_o with_o the_o honourable_a character_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o most_o admirable_a and_o infinite_o industrious_a person_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o heterodox_n opinion_n of_o he_o that_o i_o know_v of_o once_o take_v notice_n of_o in_o all_o his_o work_n but_o only_o that_o concern_v the_o duration_n of_o future_a torment_n and_o that_o too_o but_o 1._o but_o de_fw-fr com._n essent_fw-la patr._n f._n &_o s●_n p._n 236._o t._n 1._o oblique_o mention_v whence_o i_o be_o apt_a to_o conclude_v either_o that_o origen_n writing_n be_v not_o then_o so_o notorious_o guilty_a or_o that_o this_o great_a man_n and_o zealous_a defender_n of_o the_o church_n doctrine_n who_o be_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o what_o origen_n have_v teach_v or_o write_v nay_o assure_v we_o he_o have_v read_v his_o book_n do_v not_o look_v upon_o those_o dangerous_a thing_n that_o be_v in_o they_o as_o his_o sense_n and_o indeed_o so_o he_o say_v express_o that_o what_o thing_n he_o write_v by_o way_n of_o controversy_n and_o disputation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o his_o own_o word_n and_o sentiment_n but_o as_o those_o of_o his_o contentious_a adversary_n who_o he_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o which_z according_o in_o the_o passage_n he_o cite_v he_o careful_o distinguish_v from_o origen_n own_o word_n and_o sense_n to_o all_o which_o i_o may_v add_v that_o when_o the_o controversy_n about_o the_o condemnation_n of_o his_o book_n be_v drive_v 319._o drive_v socrat._v h._n eccl._n l._n 6._o c._n 12._o p._n 319._o on_o most_o furious_o by_o theophilus_n and_o epiphanius_n theotimus_n the_o good_a scythian_a bishop_n plain_o tell_v epiphanius_n that_o for_o his_o part_n he_o will_v never_o so_o much_o dishonour_v a_o person_n so_o venerable_a for_o his_o piety_n and_o antiquity_n nor_o dare_v he_o condemn_v what_o their_o ancestor_n never_o reject_v especial_o when_o there_o be_v no_o ill_a and_o mischievous_a doctrine_n in_o origen_n work_n therewithal_o pull_v out_o a_o book_n of_o origen_n which_o he_o read_v before_o the_o whole_a convention_n and_o show_v it_o to_o contain_v exposition_n agreeable_a to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n with_o these_o two_o excellent_a person_n let_v i_o join_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o writer_n of_o the_o middle_a age_n of_o the_o church_n 109._o church_n breviar_n h._n eccl._n l._n 6._o c._n 3._o p._n 108_o 109._o haymo_n bishop_n of_o halberstad_n who_o speak_v of_o the_o thing_n lay_v to_o origen_n charge_n for_o my_o part_n say_v he_o save_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_n i_o affirm_v of_o he_o either_o that_o he_o never_o write_v these_o thing_n but_o that_o they_o be_v wicked_o forge_v by_o heretic_n and_o father_v upon_o his_o name_n or_o if_o he_o do_v write_v they_o he_o write_v they_o not_o as_o his_o own_o judgement_n but_o as_o the_o opinion_n of_o other_o and_o if_o as_o some_o will_v have_v it_o they_o be_v his_o own_o sentiment_n we_o ought_v rather_o to_o deal_v compassionate_o with_o so_o learned_a a_o man_n who_o have_v convey_v so_o vast_a a_o treasury_n of_o learning_n to_o we_o what_o fault_n there_o be_v in_o his_o write_n those_o orthodox_n and_o useful_a thing_n which_o they_o contain_v be_v abundant_o sufficient_a to_o overbalance_n xxx_o this_o and_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o be_v and_o may_v be_v plead_v in_o origen_n defence_n and_o yet_o after_o all_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o great_a mistake_n and_o rash_a proposition_n which_o the_o large_a charity_n can_v excuse_v he_o have_v a_o natural_a warmth_n and_o fervour_n of_o mind_n a_o comprehensive_a wit_n a_o insatiable_a thirst_n after_o knowledge_n and_o a_o desire_n to_o understand_v the_o most_o abstruse_a and_o mysterious_a speculation_n of_o theology_n which_o make_v he_o give_v himself_o a_o unbounded_a liberty_n in_o inquire_v into_o and_o discourse_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n he_o write_v much_o and_o dictate_v apace_o and_o be_v engage_v in_o infinite_a variety_n of_o business_n which_o seldom_o give_v he_o leisure_n to_o review_v and_o correct_v his_o writing_n and_o to_o let_v they_o pass_v the_o censure_n of_o second_o and_o mature_a thought_n he_o trade_v great_o in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o heathen_n and_o be_v infinite_o solicitous_a to_o make_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n look_v as_o little_a unlike_a as_o may_v be_v to_o their_o best_a and_o belove_a notion_n and_o certain_o what_o marcellus_n 23._o marcellus_n ap._n euseb_n contr_n marcel_n l._n 1._o p._n 23._o bishop_n of_o ancyra_n long_o since_o object_v against_o he_o be_v unquestionable_o true_a notwithstanding_o what_o eusebius_n have_v say_v to_o salve_v it_o that_o come_v fresh_a out_o of_o the_o philosophic_a school_n and_o have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n accurate_o train_v up_o in_o the_o principle_n and_o book_n of_o plato_n he_o apply_v himself_o to_o divine_a thing_n before_o he_o be_v sufficient_o dispose_v to_o receive_v they_o and_o fall_v upon_o write_v concern_v they_o while_o secular_a learning_n have_v yet_o the_o predominancy_n in_o his_o mind_n and_o so_o unwary_o mingle_v philosophic_a notion_n with_o christian_a principle_n further_o than_o the_o analogy_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n will_v allow_v and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o whoever_o will_v parallel_v his_o and_z and_o the_o platonic_a principle_n will_v find_v that_o most_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o be_v charge_v with_o his_o master-notion_n be_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o school_n of_o plato_n as_o the_o above_o mention_v huetius_n have_v in_o many_o thing_n particular_o observe_v s._n hierom_n himself_o who_o the_o torrent_n of_o that_o time_n make_v a_o severe_a enemy_n to_o origen_n can_v but_o have_v so_o much_o tenderness_n for_o he_o even_o in_o that_o very_a tract_n 2._o tract_n ad_fw-la pammach_n de_fw-fr error_n orig._n p._n 192._o tom._n 2._o wherein_o he_o pass_v the_o deep_a censure_n upon_o he_o after_o he_o have_v commend_v he_o for_o his_o part_n zeal_n and_o strictness_n of_o life_n which_o of_o we_o say_v he_o be_v able_a to_o read_v so_o much_o as_o he_o have_v write_v who_o will_v not_o admire_v the_o ardent_a and_o sprightly_a temper_n of_o his_o mind_n towards_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o if_o any_o envious_a zealot_n shall_v object_v his_o error_n to_o we_o let_v he_o free_o hear_v what_o be_v say_v of_o old_a quandoque_fw-la bone_fw-la dormitat_fw-la homerus_fw-la 815._o horat._n de_fw-fr art_n poet._n v._n 359._o p._n 815._o verum_fw-la opere_fw-la
excellency_n of_o those_o ascribe_v to_o he_o the_o great_a honour_n do_v to_o his_o memory_n i._o thascius_n caecilius_n cyprian_n be_v bear_v at_o carthage_n in_o the_o decline_a part_n of_o the_o forego_n saeculum_fw-la though_o the_o particular_a year_n can_v be_v ascertain_v who_o or_o what_o his_o parent_n be_v be_v unknown_a 600._o unknown_a ad_fw-la ann._n 250._o n._n v._o vid._n not_o ad_fw-la martyrol_n rom._n sept._n xxvi_o p._n 600._o cardinal_n baronius_n not_o to_o mention_v other_o make_v he_o descend_v of_o a_o rich_a honourable_a family_n and_o himself_o to_o have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o senatorian_a order_n and_o this_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o nazianzen_n 275._o nazianzen_n orat._n in_o laud._n s._n cypr._n p._n 275._o who_o indeed_o affirm_v it_o but_o then_o certain_o forget_v that_o in_o very_a few_o line_n before_o he_o have_v explode_v as_o a_o fabulous_a mistake_n the_o confound_a our_o cyprian_n with_o another_o of_o the_o same_o name_n of_o who_o nazianzen_n unquestionable_o mean_v it_o for_o beside_o our_o carthaginian_a cyprian_n there_o be_v another_o bear_v at_o antioch_n a_o person_n of_o great_a learning_n and_o eminency_n who_o travel_v through_o greece_n phrygia_n egypt_n india_n chaldaea_n and_o where_o not_o famous_a for_o the_o study_n and_o the_o art_n of_o magic_n by_o which_o he_o seek_v to_o compass_v the_o affection_n of_o justina_n a_o noble_a christian_a virgin_n at_o antioch_n by_o who_o prayer_n and_o endeavour_n he_o be_v convert_v baptize_v make_v first_o sexton_n than_o deacon_n of_o that_o church_n be_v endue_v with_o miraculous_a power_n and_o afterward_o consecrate_a bishop_n of_o that_o church_n though_o i_o confess_v i_o find_v not_o his_o name_n in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o see_v draw_v up_o by_o nicephorus_n of_o constantinople_n and_o at_o last_o have_v be_v miserable_o torment_v at_o antioch_n be_v send_v to_o dioclesian_n himself_o then_o at_o nicomedia_n by_o who_o command_n together_o with_o justina_n send_v thither_o also_o at_o the_o same_o time_n from_o damascus_n he_o be_v behead_v the_o history_n of_o all_o which_o be_v large_o describe_v in_o three_o book_n in_o verse_n write_v by_o the_o noble_a empress_n eudocia_n the_o excerpta_fw-la whereof_o be_v still_o extant_a in_o 416._o in_o cod._n clxxxiv_o col_fw-fr 416._o photius_n this_o account_n simeon_n the_o metaphra_v nicephorus_n and_o the_o late_a greek_n without_o any_o scruple_n attribute_n to_o s._n cyprian_n of_o carthage_n nay_o some_o of_o they_o make_v he_o to_o suffer_v martyrdom_n under_o the_o decian_a persecution_n though_o in_o the_o whole_a mistake_n the_o more_o to_o be_v pardon_v in_o that_o not_o only_a prudentius_n but_o nazianzen_n have_v long_o before_o manifest_o confound_v these_o two_o eminent_a person_n who_o find_v several_a passage_n of_o the_o antiochian_a cyprian_a very_a near_o a_o kin_n to_o the_o other_o carry_v all_o the_o rest_n along_o with_o they_o as_o two_o person_n very_o like_v be_v oft_o mistake_v the_o one_o for_o the_o other_o to_o prove_v that_o our_o cyprian_a be_v not_o he_o describe_v by_o nazianzen_n be_v a_o vain_a and_o needless_a attempt_n the_o account_n concern_v they_o be_v so_o vast_o different_a both_z as_o to_o their_o country_n education_n manner_n of_o life_n episcopal_a charge_n the_o time_n place_n and_o companion_n of_o their_o death_n that_o it_o be_v plain_o impossible_a to_o reconcile_v they_o but_o of_o this_o enough_o ii_o s._n cyprian's_n education_n be_v ingenuous_a init_fw-la ingenuous_a pont._n diac._n in_o vit_fw-mi cypr._n non_o long_o ab_fw-la init_fw-la polish_a by_o study_n and_o the_o liberal_a art_n though_o he_o principal_o addict_v himself_o to_o the_o study_n of_o oratory_n and_o eloquence_n wherein_o he_o make_v such_o vast_a improvement_n that_o public_o and_o with_o great_a applause_n he_o teach_v rhetoric_n at_o cypriano_n at_o hier._n the_o script_n in_o cypriano_n carthage_n all_o which_o time_n he_o live_v in_o great_a pomp_n and_o plenty_n in_o honour_n and_o power_n his_o garb_n splendid_a his_o retinue_n stately_a never_o go_v abroad_o as_o himself_o tell_v we_o 2._o we_o ad_fw-la donat._n epist_n 1._o p._n 2._o but_o he_o be_v throng_v with_o a_o crowd_n of_o client_n and_o follower_n the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o his_o life_n he_o pass_v among_o the_o error_n of_o the_o gentile_a religion_n and_o be_v at_o least_o upon_o the_o border_n of_o old_a age_n when_o he_o be_v rescue_v from_o the_o vassalage_n of_o inveterate_a custom_n the_o darkness_n of_o idolatry_n and_o the_o error_n and_o vice_n of_o his_o past_a life_n as_o supra_fw-la as_o ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la himself_o intimate_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o donatus_n he_o be_v convert_v to_o christianity_n by_o the_o argument_n and_o importunity_n of_o caecilius_n 12._o caecilius_n pont._n ibid._n p._n 12._o a_o presbyter_n of_o carthage_n a_o person_n who_o ever_o after_o he_o love_v as_o a_o friend_n and_o reverence_v as_o a_o father_n and_o so_o mutual_a a_o endearment_n be_v there_o between_o they_o that_o cyprian_a in_o honour_n to_o he_o assume_v the_o title_n of_o caecilius_n and_o the_o other_o at_o his_o death_n make_v he_o his_o executor_n and_o commit_v his_o wife_n and_o child_n to_o his_o sole_a care_n and_o tutelage_n be_v yet_o a_o catechumen_n 11._o catechumen_n id._n ibid._n p._n 11._o he_o give_v early_a instance_n of_o a_o great_a and_o generous_a piety_n profess_v a_o strict_a and_o severe_a temperance_n and_o sobriety_n account_v it_o one_o of_o the_o best_a preparation_n for_o the_o entertainment_n of_o the_o truth_n to_o subdue_v and_o tread_v down_o all_o irregular_a appetite_n and_o inclination_n his_o estate_n at_o least_o the_o great_a part_n of_o it_o he_o sell_v and_o distribute_v it_o among_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o poor_a at_o once_o triumph_v over_o the_o love_n of_o the_o world_n and_o exercise_v that_o great_a duty_n of_o mercy_n and_o charity_n which_o god_n value_v above_o all_o the_o ritual_a devotion_n in_o the_o world_n so_o that_o by_o the_o speedy_a progress_n of_o his_o piety_n say_v pontius_n his_o friend_n and_o deacon_n he_o become_v almost_o a_o perfect_a christian_a before_o he_o have_v learn_v the_o rule_n of_o christianity_n iii_o be_v full_o instruct_v in_o the_o rudiment_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n he_o be_v baptize_v 3_o baptize_v epist_n 1._o p._n 2_o 3_o when_o the_o mighty_a assistance_n which_o he_o receive_v from_o above_o perfect_o dispel_v all_o doubt_n enlighten_v all_o obscurity_n and_o enable_v he_o with_o ease_n to_o do_v thing_n which_o before_o he_o look_v upon_o as_o impossible_a to_o be_v discharge_v not_o long_o after_o he_o be_v call_v to_o the_o inferior_a ecclesiastic_a office_n and_o then_o advance_v to_o the_o degree_n of_o presbyter_n wherein_o he_o so_o admirable_o behave_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v quick_o summon_v to_o the_o high_a order_n and_o honour_n in_o the_o church_n donatus_n his_o immediate_a predecessor_n in_o the_o see_v of_o carthage_n as_o his_o own_o word_n 82_o word_n epist_n 55._o p._n 82_o seem_v to_o imply_v be_v dead_a the_o general_a vogue_n both_o of_o clergy_n and_o people_n felicissimus_n the_o presbyter_n and_o some_o very_o few_o of_o his_o party_n only_o dissent_v 53._o dissent_v epist_n 40._o p._n 53._o be_v for_o cyprian_a to_o succeed_v he_o but_o the_o great_a modesty_n and_o humility_n of_o the_o man_n make_v he_o fly_v 12._o fly_v p._n diac._n p._n 12._o from_o the_o first_o approach_n of_o the_o news_n he_o think_v himself_o unfit_a for_o so_o weighty_a and_o honourable_a a_o employment_n and_o therefore_o desire_v that_o a_o more_o worthy_a person_n and_o some_o of_o his_o senior_n in_o the_o faith_n may_v possess_v the_o place_n his_o decline_v it_o do_v but_o set_v so_o much_o the_o keen_a an_o edge_n upon_o the_o desire_n and_o expectation_n of_o the_o people_n his_o door_n be_v immediate_o crowd_v and_o all_o passage_n of_o escape_n block_v up_o he_o will_v indeed_o have_v flee_v out_o at_o the_o window_n but_o find_v it_o in_o vain_a he_o unwilling_o yield_v the_o people_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n impatient_o wait_v divide_v between_o hope_n and_o fear_n till_o see_v he_o come_v forth_o they_o receive_v he_o with_o a_o universal_a joy_n and_o satisfaction_n this_o charge_n he_o enter_v upon_o ann._n ccxlviii_o as_o himself_o 80_o himself_o epist_n 55._o p._n 80_o plain_o intimate_v when_o in_o his_o letter_n to_o cornelius_n he_o tell_v he_o he_o have_v be_v four_o year_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n which_o epistle_n be_v write_v not_o long_o after_o the_o begin_n of_o cornelius_n his_o pontificat_fw-la ann._n ccli_o it_o be_v the_o three_o consulship_n of_o philip_n the_o emperor_n a_o memorable_a time_n it_o be_v the_o thousand_o year_n ab_fw-la urbe_fw-la condita_fw-la when_o the_o ludi_fw-la saeculares_fw-la be_v celebrate_v at_o rome_n with_o all_o imaginable_a magnificence_n
judgement_n and_o our_o conformity_n to_o he_o in_o glory_n and_o to_o hope_v for_o a_o state_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n wherein_o they_o shall_v be_v entertain_v with_o such_o little_a and_o trifle_a such_o fade_a and_o transitory_a thing_n as_o this_o world_n do_v afford_v dionysius_n be_v then_o in_o the_o province_n of_o the_o arsenoitae_n where_o this_o opinion_n have_v prevail_v so_o far_o as_o to_o draw_v whole_a church_n into_o schism_n and_o separation_n summon_v the_o presbyter_n and_o teacher_n who_o preach_v in_o the_o country_n village_n and_o as_o many_o of_o the_o people_n as_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o come_v advise_v they_o that_o in_o their_o sermon_n they_o will_v public_o examine_v this_o doctrine_n they_o present_o defend_v themselves_o with_o this_o book_n whereupon_o he_o begin_v more_o close_o to_o join_v issue_n with_o they_o continue_v with_o they_o three_o day_n together_o from_o morning_n to_o night_n weigh_v and_o discuss_v the_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o it_o in_o all_o which_o time_n he_o admire_v their_o constancy_n and_o love_n to_o truth_n their_o great_a quickness_n and_o readiness_n of_o understanding_n with_o so_o much_o order_n and_o decency_n so_o much_o modesty_n and_o moderation_n be_v the_o discourse_n manage_v on_o both_o side_n doubt_n propound_v and_o assent_v yield_v for_o they_o take_v a_o especial_a care_n not_o pertinacious_o to_o defend_v their_o former_a opinion_n when_o once_o they_o find_v they_o to_o be_v erroneous_a nor_o to_o shun_v any_o objection_n which_o on_o either_o part_n be_v make_v against_o they_o as_o near_o as_o may_v be_v they_o keep_v to_o the_o present_a question_n which_o they_o endeavour_v to_o make_v good_a but_o if_o convince_v by_o argument_n that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o wrong_n make_v no_o scruple_n to_o change_v their_o mind_n and_o go_v over_o to_o the_o other_o side_n with_o honest_a mind_n and_o sincere_a intention_n and_o heart_n true_o devote_v to_o god_n embrace_v whatever_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o issue_n be_v that_o coration_n the_o commander_n and_o champion_n of_o the_o other_o party_n public_o promise_v and_o protest_v before_o they_o all_o that_o he_o will_v not_o henceforth_o either_o entertain_v or_o dispute_v or_o discourse_n or_o preach_v these_o opinion_n be_v sufficient_o convince_v by_o the_o argument_n which_o the_o other_o side_n have_v offer_v to_o he_o all_o the_o brethren_n depart_v with_o mutual_a love_n unanimity_n and_o satisfaction_n such_o be_v the_o peaceable_a conclusion_n of_o this_o meeting_n and_o less_o can_v not_o be_v expect_v from_o such_o pious_a and_o honest_a soul_n such_o wise_a and_o regular_a disputer_n and_o happy_a have_v it_o be_v for_o the_o christian_a world_n have_v all_o those_o controversy_n that_o have_v disturb_v the_o church_n be_v manage_v by_o such_o prudent_a and_o orderly_a debate_n which_o as_o usual_o conduct_v rather_o widen_v the_o breach_n then_o heal_v and_o mend_v it_o dionysius_n to_o strike_v the_o controversy_n dead_a while_o his_o hand_n be_v in_o write_v a_o book_n concern_v the_o promise_n which_o s._n hierom_n forget_v what_o he_o have_v true_o say_v diony_n say_v de_fw-fr script_n in_o diony_n elsewhere_o that_o it_o be_v write_v against_o nepos_n tell_v 5._o tell_v praef_n at_o in_o l._n 18._o com._n in_o esa_n p._n 242._o t._n 5._o we_o be_v write_v against_o irenaeus_n bishop_n of_o lion_n mistake_v the_o person_n probable_o for_o his_o opinion_n in_o the_o first_o part_n whereof_o he_o state_v the_o question_n lay_v down_o his_o sense_n concern_v it_o in_o the_o second_o he_o treat_v concern_v the_o revelation_n of_o s._n john_n the_o main_a pillar_n and_o buttress_n of_o this_o opinion_n where_o both_o by_o reason_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o other_o he_o contend_v that_o it_o be_v not_o write_v by_o s._n john_n the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n but_o by_o another_o of_o that_o name_n a_o account_n of_o who_o judgement_n herein_o we_o have_v represent_v in_o another_o place_n 14._o place_n antiq._n apost_n life_n of_o s._n john_n n._n 14._o xvi_o the_o last_o controversy_n wherein_o he_o be_v concern_v be_v that_o against_o paul_n of_o samosata_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n who_o have_v 420._o have_v euseb_n ubi_fw-la sup_n c._n 27._o p._n 277_o 281._o epiph._n haeres_fw-la lxv_o p._n 262._o athanas_n de_fw-fr sin_n d._n arim._n &_o seleuc._n p._n 920._o niceph._n l._n 6._o c._n 27._o p._n 420._o confident_o vent_v these_o and_o such_o like_a impious_a dogmata_fw-la that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n that_o our_o bless_a saviour_n be_v though_o a_o holy_a yet_o a_o mere_a man_n who_o come_v not_o down_o from_o heaven_n but_o be_v of_o a_o mere_a earthly_a extract_n and_o original_n in_o who_o the_o word_n which_o he_o make_v not_o any_o thing_n distinct_a from_o the_o father_n do_v sometime_o reside_v and_o sometime_o depart_v from_o he_o with_o abundance_n of_o the_o like_a wicked_a and_o senseless_a proposition_n beside_o all_o which_o he_o be_v infinite_o obnoxious_a in_o his_o etc._n his_o epist_n synod_n ii_o antioch_n ap_fw-mi euseb_n ib._n c._n 30._o p._n 280._o etc._n etc._n moral_n as_o few_o man_n but_o serve_v the_o design_n of_o some_o lust_n by_o schism_n and_o bad_a opinion_n covetous_a without_o any_o bound_n heap_v up_o a_o vast_a estate_n though_o bear_v a_o poor_a man_n son_n partly_o by_o fraud_n and_o sacrilege_n partly_o by_o cruel_a and_o unjust_a vexation_n of_o his_o brethren_n partly_o by_o foment_v difference_n and_o take_v bribe_n to_o assist_v the_o weak_a party_n proud_a and_o vainglorious_a he_o be_v beyond_o all_o measure_n affect_v pomp_n and_o train_n and_o secular_a power_n and_o rather_o to_o be_v style_v a_o temporal_a prince_n than_o a_o bishop_n go_v through_o the_o street_n and_o all_o public_a place_n in_o solemn_a state_n with_o person_n walk_v before_o he_o and_o crowd_n of_o people_n follow_v after_o he_o in_o the_o church_n he_o cause_v to_o be_v erect_v a_o throne_n high_o than_o ordinary_a and_o a_o place_n which_o he_o call_v secretum_fw-la after_o the_o manner_n of_o civil_a magistrate_n who_o in_o the_o inner_a part_n of_o the_o praetorium_n have_v a_o place_n rail_v in_o with_o curtain_n hang_v before_o it_o where_o they_o sit_v to_o hear_v cause_n he_o be_v wont_a to_o clap_v his_o hand_n upon_o his_o thigh_n and_o to_o stamp_v with_o his_o foot_n upon_o the_o bench_n frown_v upon_o and_o reproach_v those_o who_o do_v not_o theatrical_o shout_n and_o make_v a_o noise_n while_o he_o be_v discourse_v to_o they_o wherein_o he_o use_v also_o to_o reflect_v upon_o his_o predecessor_n and_o the_o most_o eminent_a person_n that_o have_v be_v before_o he_o with_o all_o imaginable_a scorn_n and_o petulancy_n magnify_v himself_o as_o far_o beyond_o they_o the_o hymn_n that_o be_v ordinary_o sing_v in_o honour_n of_o our_o lord_n he_o abolish_v as_o late_a and_o novel_a and_o in_o stead_n thereof_o teach_v some_o of_o his_o proselyted_a female_n upon_o the_o easter_n solemnity_n to_o chant_v out_o some_o which_o he_o have_v compose_v in_o his_o own_o commendation_n to_o the_o horror_n and_o astonishment_n of_o all_o that_o hear_v they_o procure_v the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n of_o the_o neighbour_a part_n to_o publish_v the_o same_o thing_n of_o he_o in_o their_o sermon_n to_o the_o people_n some_o of_o his_o proselyte_n not_o stick_v to_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v a_o angel_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n all_o which_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o control_v that_o he_o high_o encourage_v they_o and_o hear_v they_o himself_o not_o only_o with_o patience_n but_o delight_n he_o be_v moreover_o vehement_o suspect_v of_o incontinency_n maintain_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d subintroduce_v woman_n in_o his_o house_n and_o some_o of_o they_o person_n of_o exquisite_a beauty_n contrary_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o the_o great_a scandal_n of_o religion_n and_o that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v must_v reproach_v by_o those_o that_o be_v about_o he_o he_o endeavour_v to_o debauch_v his_o clergy_n connive_v at_o their_o vice_n and_o irregularity_n and_o corrupt_a other_o with_o pension_n and_o who_o he_o can_v not_o prevail_v with_o by_o evil_a art_n he_o awe_v by_o power_n and_o his_o mighty_a interest_n in_o the_o prince_n and_o great_a one_o of_o those_o part_n so_o that_o they_o be_v force_v with_o sadness_n to_o bewail_v at_o home_n what_o they_o dare_v not_o publish_v and_o declare_v abroad_o xvii_o to_o rectify_v these_o enormity_n most_o of_o the_o chief_a bishop_n of_o the_o east_n resolve_v to_o meet_v in_o a_o synod_n at_o antioch_n 279._o antioch_n euseb_n ib._n c._n 27._o p._n 277._o etc._n etc._n 30._o p._n 279._o to_o which_o they_o earnest_o invite_v our_o dionysius_n but_o alas_o age_n and_o infirmity_n have_v render_v he_o incapable_a of_o such_o a_o journey_n
16._o 19_o bruttius_n praesens_fw-la ii_o julianus_n create_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n  _fw-fr 1_o sex_n quinctili●_n gordianus_n pantaenus_n a_o christian_a philosopher_n open_v the_o catechetic_a school_n at_o alexandria_n  _fw-fr 181_o  _fw-fr 1_o imp._n commodus_n iii_o the_o persecution_n against_o the_o christian_n much_o abate_v  _fw-fr 2_o antistius_n burrhus_n  _fw-fr 182_o  _fw-fr 2_o petronius_n mamertinus_n theodotion_n of_o pontus_n first_o a_o marcionite_n than_o a_o jew_n translate_v the_o old_a testament_n into_o greek_a  _fw-fr 3_o trebellius_n rufus_n the_o temple_n of_o serapis_n at_o alexandria_n burn_v down_o  _fw-fr 183_o  _fw-fr 3_o imp._n commodus_n iu._n  _fw-fr 4_o m._n aufidius_n victorinus_n  _fw-fr 184_o  _fw-fr 4_o m._n eggius_n marullus_n seu_fw-la marcellus_n commodus_n introduce_v the_o worship_n of_o isis_n former_o prohibit_v into_o rome_n  _fw-fr 5_o m._n papirius_n aelianus_n  _fw-fr 185_o commodi_fw-la 5_o triarius_n maternus_n  _fw-fr 6_o m._n atilius_n metilius_n bradua_n  _fw-fr 186_o  _fw-fr 6_o imp._n commodus_n v._n about_o this_o time_n lucius_n a_o prince_n of_o britain_n be_v say_v to_o have_v send_v letter_n to_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la to_o furnish_v he_o with_o preacher_n to_o publish_v the_o christian_a faith_n in_o these_o part_n  _fw-fr 7_o m._n acilius_n glabrio_n origen_n bear_v  _fw-fr 187_o  _fw-fr 7_o tullius_n seu_fw-la clodius_n crispinus_n apollonius_n a_o great_a philosopher_n and_o as_o s._n hierom_n affirm_v a_o senator_n plead_v his_o own_o and_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n before_o the_o senate_n for_o which_o he_o suffer_v martyrdom_n  _fw-fr 8_o papirius_n aelianus_n  _fw-fr 188_o  _fw-fr 8_o c._n allius_n fuscianus_n the_o capitol_n burn_v by_o lightning_n which_o destroy_v the_o adjacent_a building_n especial_o the_o famous_a library_n  _fw-fr 9_o duillius_fw-la silanus_n  _fw-fr 189_o  _fw-fr 9_o junius_n silanus_n demetrius_n ordain_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n who_o sit_v 43_o year_n  _fw-fr 10_o q._n servilius_n silanus_n serapion_n make_v bishop_n of_o antioch_n this_o or_o as_o other_o the_o follow_a year_n  _fw-fr 190_o  _fw-fr 10_o imp._n commodus_n vi._n commodus_n will_v have_v himself_o account_v hercules_n the_o son_n of_o jupiter_n and_o according_o habit_n himself_o with_o other_o extravagant_a instance_n of_o folly_n  _fw-fr 11_o petronius_n septimianus_n  _fw-fr 191_o  _fw-fr 11_o cassius_n apronianus_n julian_n a_o senator_n and_o many_o other_o say_v to_o be_v martyr_v about_o this_o time_n  _fw-fr 12_o m._n attilius_n metilius_n bradua_n ii_o  _fw-fr 192_o  _fw-fr 12_o imp._n commodus_n vii_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la have_v sit_v 15_o year_n and_o 23_o day_n die_v in_o who_o room_n victor_n a_o african_a succeed_v  _fw-fr 13_o p._n helvius_n pertinax_n  _fw-fr 193_o pertinax_n à_fw-la 1_o januar._n  _fw-fr q._n sosius_n falco_n  _fw-fr did._n julianꝰ_n à_fw-fr mart._n 28._o  _fw-fr severus_n à_fw-fr maii_n 11._o 1_o c._n julius_n clarus_n  _fw-fr 194_o severi_n 1_o imp._n severus_n ii_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n pantaenus_n his_o scholar_n and_o successor_n in_o the_o catechetic_a school_n be_v famous_a about_o this_o time_n 2_o clodius_n albinus_n caesar_n ii_o pope_n victor_n excommunicate_v theodorus_n the_o heretic_n 195_o  _fw-fr 2_o q._n fl._n tertullus_n narcissus_n make_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n he_o be_v famous_a for_o miracle_n and_o a_o holy_a life_n 3_o t._n fl._n clemens_n 196_o  _fw-fr 3_o cn._n domitius_n dexter_n pope_n victor_n revive_v the_o controversy_n about_o the_o celebration_n of_o easter_n threaten_v to_o excommunicate_v the_o asiatic_a church_n for_o which_o he_o be_v severe_o reprove_v by_o many_o and_o especial_o by_o irenaeus_n 4_o l._n valeriꝰ_n messala_n priscus_n several_a synod_n hold_v to_o this_o purpose_n 197_o  _fw-fr 4_o ap._n claudius_n lateranus_n the_o jew_n and_o samaritan_n rebel_n and_o be_v overcome_v and_o their_o religion_n strict_o forbid_v severus_n triumph_v for_o that_o victory_n 5_o m._n marius_n rufinus_n  _fw-fr 198_o  _fw-fr 5_o tib._n aterius_n saturninus_n  _fw-fr 6_o c._n annius_n treboni_n gallus_n 199_o  _fw-fr 6_o p._n cornelius_n anulinus_n severus_n create_v his_o son_n antoninus_n emperor_n his_o son_n geta_n caesar_n and_o bestow_v a_o large_a donative_n upon_o the_o soldier_n which_o give_v occasion_n to_o tertullian_n to_o write_v his_o book_n de_fw-fr corona_n 7_o m._n aufidius_n fronto_n 200_o severi_n 7_o tib._n claudius_n severus_n the_o christian_n at_o rome_n severe_o treat_v by_o plautianus_n praefect_n of_o the_o city_n and_o in_o afric_n by_o saturninus_n the_o proconsul_n 8_o c._n aufidius_n victorinus_n tertullian_n write_v his_o apologetic_n either_o this_o or_o the_o follow_a year_n 201_o  _fw-fr 8_o l._n annius_n fabianus_n pope_n victor_n after_o 9_o year_n and_o 2_o month_n be_v martyr_v leave_v the_o place_n to_o zephyrinus_n 9_o m._n nonius_n mucianus_n tertullian_n present_v his_o discourse_n to_o the_o precedent_n scapula_n 202_o  _fw-fr 9_o imp._n severus_n iii_o the_o six_o persecution_n wherein_o leonidas_n origen_n father_n suffer_v martyrdom_n at_o alexandria_n irenaeus_n at_o lion_n in_o france_n 10_o imp._n antoninus_n caracalla_n 203_o  _fw-fr 10_o p._n septimius_n geta._n origen_n a_o very_a youth_n set_v up_o a_o grammar_n school_n at_o alexandria_n and_o become_v famous_a 11_o l._n septimius_n plautianus_n at_o 18_o year_n of_o age_n he_o be_v prefer_v by_o demetrius_n the_o bishop_n to_o be_v instructor_n of_o the_o catechuman_n 204_o  _fw-fr 11_o l._n fabius_n chilo_n septimius_n the_o secular_a game_n celebrate_v at_o rome_n upon_o which_o occasion_n probable_o tertullian_n write_v his_o book_n de_fw-fr spectaculis_fw-la and_o it_o may_v be_v that_o de_fw-fr idololatria_fw-la 12_o m._n annius_n libo_n 205_o  _fw-fr 12_o imp._n antoninus_n caracalla_n ii_o  _fw-fr 13_o p._n septimius_n geta_n caesar_n 206_o  _fw-fr 13_o m._n nummiꝰ_n annius_n albinꝰ_n origen_n make_v the_o famous_a attempt_n upon_o himself_o in_o make_v himself_o a_o eunuch_n 14_o fulvius_n aemilianus_n 207_o severi_n 14_o m._n flavius_n aper_n tertullian_n write_v against_o the_o marcionite_n and_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr pallio_fw-la and_o be_v then_o probable_o make_v presbyter_n of_o carthage_n 15_o q._n allius_n maximus_n about_o this_o time_n minucius_n felix_n be_v suppose_v to_o publish_v his_o dialogue_n call_v octavius_n 208_o  _fw-fr 15_o imp._n antoninus_n caracalla_n iii_o  _fw-fr 16_o p._n septimius_n geta_n caesar_n ii_o 209_o  _fw-fr 16_o t._n claudius_n pompeianus_n  _fw-fr 17_o lollianus_n avitus_n 210_o  _fw-fr 17_o m._n acilius_n faustinus_n  _fw-fr 18_o c._n caesonius_n macer_n rufinianus_n 211_o  _fw-fr 18_o q._n epidius_n rufus_n lollianus_n gentianus_n  _fw-fr antoninus_n caracalla_n à_fw-la 4_o febr._n 1_o pomponius_n bassus_n 212_o  _fw-fr 1_o m._n pompeius_n asper_n alexander_n a_o cappadocian_n bishop_n make_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n 2_o p._n asper_n 213_o  _fw-fr 2_o imp._n caracalla_n iu._n  _fw-fr 3_o p._n caelius_n balbinus_n 214_o  _fw-fr 3_o silius_z messala_z a_o disputation_n hold_v at_o rome_n between_o caius_n and_o proclus_n one_o of_o montanus_n his_o disciple_n whereupon_o pope_n zephyrin_n exclude_v proclus_n and_o tertullian_n communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o occasion_v tertullia_n start_v aside_o to_o montanus_n his_o party_n 4_o q._n aquilius_n sabinus_n 215_o antonini_n 4_o aemilius_n laetus_n tertullian_n write_v against_o the_o orthodox_n against_o who_o he_o inveigh_v under_o the_o name_n of_o psychici_fw-la 5_o anicius_n cerealis_n 216_o  _fw-fr 5_o q._n aquilius_n sabinus_n ii_o  _fw-fr 6_o sex_n corn._n anulinus_n 217_o  _fw-fr 6_o  _fw-fr at_fw-fr greek_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n call_v the_o five_o edition_n find_v in_o a_o hogshead_n at_o jericho_n insert_v by_o origen_n into_o his_o octapla_n 7_o bruttius_n praesens_fw-la macrinus_n &_o diadumen_n f_o à_fw-la 10._o april_n 1_o extricatus_n 218_o  _fw-fr 2_o anton._n diadumenus_fw-la caesar_n  _fw-fr antoninus_n elagabalus_n à_fw-la 7_o jun._n 1_o adventus_n 219_o  _fw-fr 1_o imp._n elagabalus_n ii_o pope_n zephyrin_n die_v he_o sit_v 22_o year_n and_o so_o many_o day_n succeed_v by_o callistus_n 2_o licinius_n sacerdos_n 220_o  _fw-fr 2_o imp._n elagabalus_n iii_o julius_n africanus_n a_o famous_a christian_a writer_n send_v upon_o a_o embassy_n to_o the_o emperor_n for_o the_o rebuild_n of_o nicopolis_n ancient_o emmaus_n a_o city_n in_o palestin_n 3_o m._n aurelius_n eutychianus_n comazon_n 221_o  _fw-fr 3_o annius_n gratus_fw-la  _fw-fr 4_o claudius_n seleucus_n 222_o  _fw-fr 4_o imp._n elagabalus_n iu._n hippolytus_n bishop_n of_o portus_n compose_v his_o paschal_n canon_n alexander_n mam._n à_fw-la martii_fw-la 6._o 1_o m._n aurelius_n severus_n alexander_n caesar_n 223_o alexandri_fw-la 1_o maximus_n among_o the_o famous_a man_n of_o this_o time_n be_v ulpian_n the_o lawyer_n who_o collect_v all_o the_o imperial_a edict_n former_o publish_v against_o the_o christian_n 2_o papirius_n aelianus_n 224_o  _fw-fr 2_o claudius_n julianus_n the_o christian_n cruel_o persecute_v at_o rome_n at_o the_o instigation_n of_o ulpian_n the_o great_a lawyer_n 3_o
a_o life_n of_o true_a philosophy_n and_o virtue_n 2._o ap._n dio●_n hali●_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n ●5_n tem._n 2._o history_n say_v thucydides_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d philosophy_n draw_v from_o example_n the_o one_o be_v a_o more_o gross_a and_o popular_a philosophy_n the_o other_o a_o more_o subtle_a and_o refine_a history_n these_o consideration_n together_o with_o a_o desire_n to_o perpetuate_v the_o memory_n of_o brave_a and_o great_a action_n give_v birth_n to_o history_n and_o oblige_v mankind_n to_o transmit_v the_o more_o observable_a passage_n both_o of_o their_o own_o and_o forego_v time_n to_o the_o notice_n of_o posterity_n the_o first_o in_o this_o kind_n be_v moses_n the_o great_a prince_n and_o legislator_n of_o the_o jewish_a nation_n who_o from_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n convey_v down_o the_o record_n of_o above_o mmdl_o year_n the_o same_o course_n be_v more_o or_o less_o continue_v through_o all_o the_o period_n of_o the_o jewish_a state_n among_o the_o babylonian_n they_o have_v their_o public_a archive_v which_o be_v transcribe_v by_o berosus_n the_o priest_n of_o belus_n who_o compose_v the_o chaldean_a history_n the_o egyptian_n be_v wont_a to_o record_v their_o memorable_a act_n upon_o pillar_n in_o hieroglyphic_n note_n and_o sacred_a character_n first_o begin_v as_o they_o pretend_v by_o thouth_n or_o the_o first_o of_o their_o mercuries_n out_o of_o which_o manethos_n their_o chief_a priest_n collect_v his_o three_o book_n of_o egyptian_a dynasty_n which_o he_o dedicate_v to_o ptolemy_n philadelphus_n second_o of_o that_o line_n the_o phoenician_n history_n be_v first_o attempt_v by_o sanchoniathon_n digest_v partly_o out_o of_o the_o annal_n of_o city_n partly_o out_o of_o the_o book_n keep_v in_o the_o temple_n and_o communicate_v to_o he_o by_o jerombaal_n priest_n of_o the_o god_n jao_n this_o he_o dedicate_v to_o abibalus_n king_n of_o berytus_n which_o philo_n byblius_n about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n adrian_n translate_v into_o greek_a the_o greek_n boast_v of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o cadmus_n archilochus_n and_o many_o other_o though_o the_o most_o ancient_a of_o their_o historian_n now_o extant_a be_v herodotus_n thucydides_n and_o xenophon_n among_o the_o roman_n the_o foundation_n of_o history_n be_v lay_v in_o annal_n the_o public_a act_n of_o every_o year_n be_v make_v up_o by_o the_o pontifex_n maximus_n who_o keep_v they_o at_o his_o own_o house_n that_o the_o people_n upon_o any_o emergency_n may_v resort_v to_o they_o for_o satisfaction_n these_o be_v the_o annales_n maximi_fw-la and_o afford_v excellent_a material_n to_o those_o who_o afterward_o write_v the_o history_n of_o that_o great_a and_o powerful_a commonwealth_n but_o that_o which_o of_o all_o other_o challenge_n the_o great_a regard_n both_o as_o it_o more_o immediate_o concern_v the_o present_a enquiry_n and_o as_o it_o contain_v account_n of_o thing_n relate_v to_o our_o big_a interest_n be_v the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n for_o herein_o as_o in_o a_o glass_n we_o have_v the_o true_a face_n of_o the_o church_n in_o its_o several_a age_n represent_v to_o we_o here_o we_o find_v with_o what_o infinite_a care_n those_o divine_a record_n which_o be_v the_o great_a instrument_n of_o our_o eternal_a happiness_n have_v through_o the_o several_a period_n of_o time_n be_v convey_v down_o to_o we_o with_o what_o a_o mighty_a success_n religion_n have_v triumph_v over_o the_o great_a opposition_n and_o spread_v its_o banner_n in_o the_o remote_a corner_n of_o the_o world_n with_o how_o incomparable_a a_o zeal_n good_a man_n have_v contend_v earnest_o for_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n with_o what_o a_o bitter_a and_o implacable_a fury_n the_o enemy_n of_o religion_n have_v set_v upon_o it_o and_o how_o signal_o the_o divine_a providence_n have_v appear_v in_o its_o preservation_n and_o return_v the_o mischief_n upon_o their_o own_o head_n here_o we_o see_v the_o constant_a succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o religion_n in_o their_o several_a station_n the_o glorious_a company_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o goodly_a fellowship_n of_o the_o prophet_n the_o noble_a army_n of_o martyr_n who_o with_o the_o most_o cheerful_a and_o compose_a mind_n have_v go_v to_o heaven_n through_o the_o acute_a torment_n in_o short_a we_o have_v here_o the_o most_o admirable_a example_n of_o a_o divine_a and_o religious_a life_n of_o a_o real_a and_o unfeigned_a piety_n a_o sincere_a and_o universal_a charity_n a_o strict_a temperance_n and_o sobriety_n a_o unconquerable_a patience_n and_o submission_n clear_o represent_v to_o we_o and_o the_o high_a we_o go_v the_o more_o illustrious_a be_v the_o instance_n of_o piety_n and_o virtue_n for_o however_o late_a age_n may_v have_v improve_v in_o knowledge_n experience_v daily_o make_v new_a addition_n to_o art_n and_o science_n yet_o former_a time_n be_v most_o eminent_a for_o the_o practice_n and_o virtue_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n the_o divine_a law_n while_o new_o publish_v have_v a_o strong_a influence_n upon_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o religion_n be_v more_o active_a and_o vigorous_a till_o man_n by_o degree_n begin_v to_o be_v debauch_v into_o that_o impiety_n and_o profaneness_n that_o in_o these_o last_o time_n have_v overrun_v the_o world_n it_o be_v altogether_o needless_a and_o improper_a for_o i_o to_o consider_v what_o record_v there_o be_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n before_o our_o saviour_n incarnation_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o my_o purpose_n to_o inquire_v by_o what_o hand_n the_o first_o affair_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v be_v transmit_v to_o we_o as_o for_o the_o life_n and_o death_n the_o action_n and_o miracle_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o some_o of_o the_o first_o act_n of_o his_o apostle_n they_o be_v full_o represent_v by_o the_o evangelical_n historian_n indeed_o immediate_o after_o they_o we_o meet_v with_o nothing_o of_o this_o nature_n 94._o h._n e●cl_n l._n 3._o c._n 24._o p._n 94._o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o immediate_a successor_n as_o eusebius_n observe_v not_o be_v at_o leisure_n to_o write_v many_o book_n as_o be_v employ_v in_o ministery_n great_a and_o more_o immediate_o serviceable_a to_o the_o world_n the_o first_o that_o engage_v in_o this_o way_n be_v hegesippus_n a_o ancient_a and_o apostolic_a man_n as_o he_o in_o photius_n style_v he_o a_o hebrew_a by_o descent_n 893._o cod._n 232._o col_fw-fr 893._o and_o bear_v as_o be_v probable_a in_o palestin_n he_o flourish_v principal_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o m._n aurelius_n and_o come_v to_o rome_n in_o the_o time_n of_o ancietus_n where_o he_o reside_v till_o the_o time_n of_o eleutherius_fw-la he_o write_v five_o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a history_n which_o he_o style_v commentary_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o church_n wherein_o in_o a_o plain_a and_o familiar_a stile_n he_o describe_v the_o apostle_n travel_n and_o preach_n the_o remarkable_a passage_n of_o the_o church_n the_o several_a schism_n heresy_n and_o persecution_n that_o infest_a it_o from_o our_o lord_n death_n till_o his_o own_o time_n but_o these_o alas_o be_v long_o since_o lose_v the_o next_o that_o succeed_v in_o this_o province_n though_o the_o first_o that_o reduce_v it_o to_o any_o exactness_n and_o perfection_n be_v eusebius_n he_o be_v bear_v in_o palestin_n about_o the_o late_a time_n of_o the_o emperor_n gallienus_n ordain_v presbyter_n by_o agapius_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n who_o suffer_v about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o dioclesian_n persecution_n eusebius_n succeed_v in_o his_o see_n a_o man_n of_o incomparable_a part_n and_o learning_n and_o of_o no_o less_o industry_n and_o diligence_n in_o search_v out_o the_o record_n and_o antiquity_n of_o the_o church_n after_o several_a other_o volume_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o christian_a cause_n against_o the_o assault_n both_o of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n he_o set_v himself_o to_o write_v a_o ecclesiastical_a history_n 3._o lib._n 1._o c._n 1._o p._n 3._o wherein_o he_o design_v as_o himself_o tell_v we_o to_o recount_v from_o the_o birth_n of_o our_o lord_n till_o his_o time_n the_o most_o memorable_a transaction_n of_o the_o church_n the_o apostolical_a succession_n the_o first_o preacher_n and_o planter_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o bishop_n that_o preside_v in_o the_o most_o eminent_a see_v the_o most_o note_a error_n and_o heresy_n the_o calamity_n that_o befall_v the_o jewish_a state_n the_o attempt_n and_o persecution_n make_v against_o the_o christian_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n the_o torment_n and_o suffering_n of_o the_o martyr_n and_o the_o bless_a and_o happy_a period_n that_o be_v put_v to_o they_o by_o the_o conversion_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a all_o this_o according_o he_o digest_v in_o ten_o book_n which_o he_o compose_v in_o the_o decline_a part_n of_o his_o life_n euseb_n praefat._n de_fw-fr
in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n without_o so_o much_o as_o ever_o mention_v his_o own_o but_o in_o that_o he_o treat_v they_o with_o such_o gentle_a and_o mild_a persuasive_n nothing_o of_o sourness_n or_o a_o imperious_a lord_v it_o over_o god_n heritage_n to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o whole_a epistle_n have_v he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n to_o who_o sentence_n the_o whole_a christian_a world_n be_v bind_v to_o stand_v invest_v with_o a_o supreme_a unaccountable_a power_n from_o which_o there_o lie_v no_o appeal_n we_o may_v have_v expect_v to_o have_v hear_v he_o argue_v at_o another_o rate_n but_o these_o be_v the_o encroachment_n and_o usurpation_n of_o late_a age_n when_o a_o spirit_n of_o covetousness_n and_o secular_a ambition_n have_v stifle_v the_o modesty_n and_o simplicity_n of_o those_o first_o and_o best_a age_n of_o religion_n there_o be_v so_o great_a a_o affinity_n in_o many_o thing_n both_o as_o to_o word_n and_o matter_n between_o this_o and_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n as_o tempt_v eusebius_n and_o s._n hierom_n of_o old_a and_o some_o other_o before_o they_o ibid._n ibid._n to_o conclude_v s._n clemens_n at_o least_o the_o translator_n of_o that_o epistle_n this_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n after_o it_o have_v be_v general_o bewail_v as_o lose_v for_o many_o age_n be_v not_o more_o to_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n than_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o own_o in_o particular_a some_o forty_o year_n since_o publish_v here_o in_o england_n a_o treasure_n not_o sufficient_o to_o be_v value_v beside_o this_o first_o there_o be_v the_o fragment_n of_o a_o second_o epistle_n or_o rather_o homily_n contain_v a_o serious_a exhortation_n and_o direction_n to_o a_o pious_a life_n ancient_a indeed_o and_o which_o many_o will_v persuade_v we_o to_o be_v his_o and_o to_o have_v be_v write_v many_o year_n before_o the_o former_a as_o that_o which_o betray_v no_o footstep_n of_o troublesome_a and_o unquiet_a time_n but_o eusebius_n s._n hierom_n suprecitat_fw-la losis_n suprecitat_fw-la and_o photius_n assure_v we_o that_o it_o be_v reject_v and_o never_o obtain_v among_o the_o ancient_n equal_a approbation_n with_o the_o first_o and_o therefore_o though_o we_o do_v not_o peremptory_o determine_v against_o its_o be_v he_o yet_o we_o think_v it_o safe_a to_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_n then_o of_o some_o few_o late_a writer_n in_o this_o matter_n x._o as_o for_o those_o write_n that_o be_v undoubted_o spurious_a and_o supposititious_a disow_v as_o 110._o as_o ibid._n pag._n 110._o eusebius_n say_v because_o they_o do_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d retain_v the_o true_a stamp_n and_o character_n of_o orthodox_n apostolic_a doctrine_n though_o the_o truth_n be_v he_o speak_v it_o only_o of_o the_o dialogue_n of_o peter_n and_o appion_n not_o mention_v the_o decretal_a epistle_n as_o not_o worth_a take_v notice_n of_o there_o be_v four_o extant_a at_o this_o day_n that_o be_v entitle_v to_o he_o the_o apostolical_a canon_n and_o the_o constitution_n say_v to_o be_v pen_v by_o he_o though_o dictate_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o recognition_n christianity_n praef._n to_o primit_fw-la christianity_n and_o the_o epistle_n to_o s._n james_n for_o the_o two_o first_o the_o apostolic_a canon_n and_o constitution_n i_o have_v declare_v my_o sense_n of_o they_o in_o another_o place_n to_o which_o i_o shall_v add_v nothing_o here_o the_o recognition_n succeed_v convey_v to_o we_o under_o different_a title_n by_o the_o ancient_n sometime_o style_v s._n clemens_n his_o act_n history_n chronicle_n sometime_o s._n peter_n act_n itinerary_n p●riods_n dialogue_n with_o appion_n all_o which_o be_v unquestionable_o but_o different_a inscription_n or_o it_o may_v be_v parcel_n of_o the_o same_o book_n true_a it_o be_v what_o 289._o what_o cod._n cxii_o col_fw-fr 289._o photius_n suspect_v and_o 397._o and_o praefat._n ad_fw-la gaudent_fw-la p._n 397._o rufinus_n who_o translate_v it_o express_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v two_o several_a edition_n of_o this_o book_n differ_v in_o some_o thing_n but_o the_o same_o in_o most_o and_o it_o deserve_v to_o be_v consider_v whether_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mention_v by_o 248._o by_o h._n eccl._n l._n 3._o c._n 18._o p._n 248._o nicephorus_n and_o which_o he_o say_v the_o church_n receive_v and_o deny_v to_o be_v those_o mean_v by_o eusebius_n and_o those_o clementine_n homily_n late_o publish_v under_o that_o very_a name_n be_v not_o that_o other_o edition_n of_o the_o recognition_n see_v they_o exact_o answer_v rufinus_n his_o character_n differ_v in_o some_o thing_n but_o in_o most_o agree_v with_o they_o there_o be_v yet_o a_o three_o edition_n or_o rather_o abstract_v out_o of_o all_o style_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n clemens_n his_o epitome_n of_o the_o act_n travel_n and_o preach_n of_o s._n peter_n agree_v with_o the_o former_a though_o keep_v more_o close_a to_o the_o homily_n than_o the_o other_o this_o i_o guess_v to_o have_v be_v compile_v by_o simeon_n the_o metaphra_v as_o for_o other_o reason_n so_o especial_o because_o the_o appendage_n add_v to_o it_o by_o the_o same_o hand_n concern_v clemens_n his_o martyrdom_n be_v word_n for_o word_n the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o metaphrastes_n the_o close_a of_o it_o only_o except_v which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o s._n ephraem_v homily_n of_o the_o miracle_n do_v at_o his_o tomb._n xi_o the_o recognition_n themselves_o be_v undoubted_o of_o very_o great_a antiquity_n 28._o antiquity_n pseudo-isid_a p._n 28._o write_v about_o the_o same_o time_n and_o by_o the_o same_o hand_n as_o blondel_n probable_o conjecture_n with_o the_o constitution_n about_o the_o year_n clxxx_o or_o not_o long_o after_o sure_o i_o be_o they_o be_v cite_v by_o 82._o by_o philocal_a c._n 23._o p._n 81_o 82._o origen_n as_o the_o work_n of_o clemens_n in_o his_o period_n and_o his_o large_a quotation_n be_v in_o so_o many_o word_n 10._o word_n recognit_fw-la l._n 10._o extant_a in_o they_o at_o this_o day_n nay_o before_o he_o we_o meet_v with_o a_o very_a long_a fragment_n of_o bardesanes_n the_o etc._n the_o extat_fw-la ap_fw-mi euseb_n praep._n evan._n l._n 6._o c._n 10._o p._n 273_o &_o seq_fw-la vid._n recogn_n lib._n 9_o p._n 503._o etc._n etc._n syrian_a who_o flourish_v ann._n clxxx_o concern_v fate_n word_n for_o word_n the_o same_o with_o what_o we_o find_v in_o the_o recognition_n and_o it_o seem_v equal_o reasonable_a to_o suppose_v that_o bardesanes_n have_v it_o thence_o as_o that_o the_o other_o borrow_v it_o from_o he_o nay_o what_o if_o bardesanes_n himself_o be_v the_o author_n of_o these_o book_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o great_a part_n and_o learning_n a_o man_n prompt_v and_o eloquent_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 207._o 〈◊〉_d euseb_n h._n eccl._n l._n 4._o c._n 30._o p._n 151._o epiph._n haeres_fw-la lvi_o p._n 207._o a_o acute_a and_o subtle_a disputant_n heretical_o incline_v for_o he_o come_v out_o of_o the_o school_n of_o valentinus_n who_o uncouth_a notion_n he_o have_v so_o deep_o imbibe_v that_o even_o after_o his_o recantation_n he_o can_v never_o get_v clear_a from_o the_o dregs_o of_o they_o as_o eusebius_n inform_v we_o though_o epiphanius_n tell_v we_o he_o be_v first_o orthodox_n and_o afterward_o fall_v into_o the_o error_n of_o that_o sect_n like_o a_o well_o freight_a ship_n that_o have_v due_o perform_v its_o voyage_n be_v cast_v away_o in_o the_o very_a sight_n of_o the_o harbour_n he_o be_v a_o great_a mathematician_n and_o astrologer_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 273._o 〈◊〉_d enstb_v praep._n evang._n l._n 6._o c._n ●_o p._n 273._o accurate_o verse_v in_o the_o chaldaean_a learning_n and_o write_v incomparable_a dialogue_n concern_v fate_n which_o he_o dedicate_v to_o the_o emperor_n antoninus_n and_o sure_o none_o can_v have_v look_v into_o the_o recognition_n but_o he_o mus●_n see_v what_o a_o considerable_a part_n the_o doctrine_n concern_v fate_n the_o genesis_n the_o influence_n of_o the_o star_n and_o heavenly_a constellation_n and_o such_o like_a notion_n make_v there_o of_o s._n peter_n and_o s._n clemens_n his_o dialogue_n and_o discourse_n to_o which_o we_o may_v add_v what_o photius_n have_v observe_v supre_fw-fr ubi_fw-la supre_fw-fr and_o be_v abundant_o evident_a from_o the_o thing_n itself_o that_o these_o book_n be_v considerable_a for_o their_o clearness_n and_o perspicuity_n their_o eloquent_a stile_n and_o grave_a discourse_n and_o that_o great_a variety_n of_o learning_n that_o be_v in_o they_o plain_o show_v their_o composer_n to_o have_v be_v a_o master_n in_o all_o humane_a learning_n and_o the_o study_n of_o philosophy_n i_o may_v further_o remark_n that_o bardesanes_n seem_v to_o have_v have_v a_o peculiar_a genius_n for_o book_n of_o this_o nature_n it_o be_v
particular_o cit_fw-la particular_o epip●_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la note_v of_o he_o that_o beside_o the_o scripture_n he_o trade_v in_o certain_a apocryphal_a write_n he_o write_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d bard_n 〈◊〉_d euseb_n h._n eccl._n ubi_fw-la supr_fw-la de_fw-fr script_n eccl._n in_o bard_n which_o s._n hierom_n render_v infinite_a volume_n write_v indeed_o for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o syriac_n but_o which_o his_o scholar_n translate_v into_o greek_a though_o he_o himself_o be_v sufficient_o skilful_a in_o that_o language_n as_o epiphanius_n note_v in_o the_o number_n of_o these_o book_n may_v be_v the_o recognition_n plausible_o father_v upon_o s._n clemens_n who_o be_v notorious_o know_v to_o be_v s._n peter_n companion_n and_o disciple_n and_o be_v but_o some_o of_o his_o many_o book_n now_o extant_a i_o doubt_v not_o but_o a_o much_o great_a affinity_n both_o in_o stile_n and_o notion_n will_v appear_v between_o they_o but_o this_o i_o propose_v only_o as_o a_o probable_a conjecture_n and_o leave_v it_o at_o the_o reader_n pleasure_n either_o to_o reject_v or_o entertain_v it_o i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o both_o 219._o both_o apol._n adv_o rufin_n p._n 219._o s._n hierom_n and_o 289._o and_o phot._n cod._n cxii_o col_fw-fr 289._o photius_n charge_v these_o book_n with_o haeretical_a opinion_n especial_o some_o derogatory_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o it_o may_v be_v rufinus_n who_o 195._o who_o apolog._n pro_fw-la orig._n ap_fw-mi hieron_n tom._n 4._o p._n 195._o confess_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o suppose_v they_o to_o have_v be_v insert_v by_o some_o haeretical_a hand_n conceal_v in_o his_o translation_n nay_o 65._o nay_o haeres_fw-la xxx_o p._n 65._o epiphanius_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o ebionite_n do_v so_o extreme_o corrupt_v they_o that_o they_o scarce_o leave_v any_o thing_n of_o s._n clemens_n sound_n and_o true_a in_o they_o which_o he_o observe_v from_o their_o repugnancy_n to_o his_o other_o write_n those_o encyclical_a epistle_n of_o his_o as_o he_o call_v they_o which_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n but_o then_o its_o plain_a he_o mean_v it_o only_o of_o those_o copy_n which_o be_v in_o the_o possession_n of_o those_o haeretic_n probable_o not_o now_o extant_a nor_o do_v any_o of_o those_o particular_a adulteration_n which_o he_o say_v they_o make_v in_o they_o appear_v in_o our_o book_n nor_o in_o those_o large_a and_o to_o be_v sure_o uncorrupt_a fragment_n of_o bardesanes_n and_o origen_n be_v there_o the_o least_o considerable_a variation_n from_o those_o book_n which_o we_o have_v at_o this_o day_n but_o of_o this_o enough_o xii_o the_o epistle_n to_o s._n james_n the_o brother_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v no_o doubt_n of_o equal_a date_n with_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o close_a whereof_o the_o author_n pretend_v that_o he_o be_v command_v by_o s._n peter_n to_o give_v he_o a_o account_n of_o his_o travel_n discourse_n and_o the_o success_n of_o his_o ministry_n under_o the_o title_n of_o clemens_n his_o epitome_n of_o peter_n popular_a preach_n to_o which_o he_o tell_v he_o he_o will_v next_o proceed_v so_o that_o this_o epistle_n original_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o praeface_n to_o s._n peter_n act_n or_o period_n the_o same_o in_o effect_n with_o the_o recognition_n and_o according_o in_o the_o late_a edition_n of_o the_o clementine_n homily_n which_o have_v the_o very_a title_n mention_v in_o that_o epistle_n it_o be_v find_v prefix_v before_o they_o citat_fw-la loc._n supra_fw-la citat_fw-la this_o epistle_n as_o photius_n tell_v we_o vary_v according_a to_o different_a edition_n sometime_o pretend_v that_o it_o and_o the_o account_n of_o s._n peter_n act_n annex_v to_o it_o be_v write_v by_o s._n peter_n himself_o and_o by_o he_o send_v to_o s._n james_n sometime_o that_o they_o be_v write_v by_o clemens_n at_o s._n peter_n instance_n and_o command_n whence_o he_o conjecture_n that_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a edition_n of_o s._n peter_n act_n one_o say_v to_o be_v write_v by_o himself_o the_o other_o by_o clemens_n and_o that_o when_o in_o time_n the_o first_o be_v lose_v that_o pretend_v to_o s._n clemens_n do_v remain_v for_o so_o he_o assure_v we_o he_o constant_o find_v it_o in_o those_o many_o copy_n that_o he_o meet_v with_o notwithstanding_o that_o the_o epistle_n and_o inscription_n be_v sometime_o different_a and_o various_a by_o the_o original_a whereof_o now_o publish_v appear_v the_o fraud_n of_o the_o factor_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n who_o in_o all_o latin_a edition_n have_v add_v a_o appendix_n almost_o twice_o as_o large_a as_o the_o epistle_n itself_o and_o well_o have_v it_o be_v have_v this_o be_v the_o only_a instance_n wherein_o some_o man_n to_o shore_n up_o a_o totter_a cause_n have_v make_v bold_a with_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n his_o write_n genuine_a epistola_fw-la ad_fw-la corinthios_n doubtful_a epistola_fw-la ad_fw-la corinth_n secunda_fw-la supposititious_a epistola_fw-la ad_fw-la jacobum_fw-la fratrem_fw-la domini_fw-la recognitionum_fw-la lib._n 10._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d seu_fw-la homiliae_fw-la clementinae_n constitutionum_fw-la app._n lib._n 8._o canon_n apostolici_fw-la the_o end_n of_o s._n clemens_n life_n the_o life_n of_o s._n simeon_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n micha_n burgh_n deli_fw-la et_fw-la sculp_v s._n symeon_n hierosolymitanus_n the_o heedless_a confound_v he_o with_o other_o of_o the_o like_a name_n his_o parent_n and_o near_a relation_n to_o our_o saviour_n the_o time_n of_o his_o birth_n his_o strict_a education_n and_o way_n of_o life_n the_o order_n and_o institution_n of_o the_o rechabite_v what_o his_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n the_o great_a care_n about_o a_o successor_n to_o s._n james_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n simeon_n choose_v to_o that_o place_n when_o and_o why_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o jewish_a state_n the_o original_a and_o progress_n of_o those_o war_n brief_o relate_v the_o miserable_a state_n of_o jerusalem_n by_o siege_n pestilence_n and_o famine_n jerusalem_n storm_v the_o burn_a of_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o rage_n of_o the_o fire_n the_o number_n of_o the_o slay_a and_o captive_n the_o just_a accomplishment_n of_o our_o lord_n prediction_n the_o many_o prodigy_n portend_v this_o destruction_n the_o christian_n forewarn_v to_o depart_v before_o jerusalem_n be_v shut_v up_o their_o withdrawment_n to_o pella_n the_o admirable_a care_n of_o the_o divine_a providence_n over_o they_o their_o return_n back_o to_o jerusalem_n when_o the_o flourish_a condition_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n there_o the_o occasion_n of_o s._n simeons_n martyrdom_n the_o infinite_a jealousy_n of_o the_o roman_a emperor_n concern_v the_o line_n of_o david_n simeons_n apprehension_n and_o crucifixion_n his_o singular_a torment_n and_o patience_n his_o great_a age_n and_o the_o time_n of_o his_o death_n i._o it_o can_v be_v unobserved_a by_o any_o that_o have_v but_o look_v into_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o church_n what_o confusion_n the_o identity_n or_o similitude_n of_o name_n have_v breed_v among_o ecclesiastic_a writer_n especial_o in_o the_o more_o early_a age_n where_o the_o record_n be_v but_o short_a and_o few_o a_o instance_n whereof_o 594._o vid._n charon_n alexandr_n olymp._n ccxx_o ind._n i._o traj_n vii_o &_o ann._n sequent_a p._n 594._o be_v there_o no_o other_o we_o have_v in_o the_o person_n of_o who_o we_o write_v who_o some_o will_v have_v to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o s._n simon_n the_o cananite_n one_o of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n other_o confound_v he_o with_o simon_n one_o of_o the_o four_o brethren_n of_o our_o lord_n while_o a_o three_o sort_n make_v all_o three_o to_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n the_o sound_n and_o similitude_n of_o name_n give_v birth_n to_o the_o several_a mistake_n for_o that_o simeon_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v a_o person_n altogether_o distinct_a from_o simon_n the_o apostle_n be_v undeniable_o evident_a from_o the_o most_o ancient_a martyrology_n both_o of_o the_o greek_a and_o the_o latin_a church_n where_o vast_o different_a account_n be_v give_v concern_v their_o person_n employment_n and_o the_o time_n and_o place_n of_o their_o death_n simon_n the_o apostle_n be_v martyr_v in_o britain_n or_o as_o other_o in_o persia_n while_o simeon_n the_o bishop_n be_v notorious_o know_v to_o have_v suffer_v in_o palestine_n or_o in_o syria_n nor_o be_v the_o testimony_n of_o dorotheus_n sophronius_n or_o isidore_n considerable_a enough_o to_o be_v weigh_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o hegesippus_n eusebius_n epiphanius_n and_o other_o but_o of_o this_o enough_o ii_o s._n simeon_n be_v the_o son_n of_o 54._o of_o h●gesip_n ap_fw-mi euseb_n l._n 3._o c._n 11._o p._n 87._o epiph._n haeres_fw-la lxvi_o p._n 274._o &_o omne_fw-la antiqua_fw-la martyrologia_fw-la adonis_n bedae_fw-la notkeri_fw-la usuardi_fw-it apud_fw-la bolland_n de_fw-fr vit._n ss_z ad_fw-la diem_fw-la xviii_o febr._n pag._n 53_o 54._o cleophas_n brother_n to_o joseph_n husband_n
the_o metropolis_n of_o lydia_n a_o great_a and_o ancient_a city_n the_o seat_n of_o the_o lydian_a king_n it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o church_n to_o which_o s._n john_n write_v epistle_n and_o wherein_o he_o take_v notice_n of_o some_o that_o dare_v own_o and_o stand_v up_o for_o god_n and_o religion_n in_o that_o great_a degeneracy_n that_o be_v come_v upon_o it_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o admirable_a part_n enrich_v with_o the_o furniture_n of_o all_o useful_a learning_n acute_a and_o eloquent_a but_o especial_o conversant_a in_o the_o path_n of_o divine_a knowledge_n have_v make_v deep_a inquiry_n into_o all_o the_o more_o uncommon_a part_n and_o speculation_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n he_o be_v for_o his_o singular_a eminency_n and_o usefulness_n choose_v bishop_n of_o sardis_n though_o we_o can_v exact_o define_v the_o time_n which_o be_v i_o to_o conjecture_v i_o shall_v guess_v it_o about_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o antoninus_n pius_n his_o reign_n or_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o successor_n he_o fill_v up_o all_o the_o part_n of_o a_o very_a excellent_a governor_n and_o guide_n of_o soul_n who_o good_a he_o be_v careful_a to_o advance_v both_o by_o word_n and_o write_v which_o that_o he_o may_v attend_v with_o less_o solicitude_n and_o distraction_n he_o not_o only_o keep_v himself_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o a_o single_a life_n but_o be_v more_o than_o ordinary_o exemplary_a for_o his_o chastity_n and_o sobriety_n his_o self-denial_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o world_n upon_o which_o account_n he_o be_v by_o polycrates_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n 191._o ephesus_n ap._n euseb_n l._n 5._o c._n 24._o p._n 191._o style_v a_o eunuch_n that_o be_v in_o our_o saviour_n explication_n one_o of_o those_o who_o make_v themselves_o eunuch_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n sake_n who_o for_o the_o service_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o a_o better_a life_n be_v content_a to_o deny_v themselves_o the_o comfort_n of_o a_o marry_a state_n and_o to_o renounce_v even_o the_o lawful_a pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n and_o god_n who_o delight_v to_o multiply_v his_o grace_n upon_o pious_a and_o holy_a soul_n crown_v his_o other_o virtue_n with_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n for_o so_o melit_fw-la so_o ap._n hieron_n de_fw-fr script_n in_o melit_fw-la tertullian_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v account_v by_o the_o orthodox_n christian_n as_o a_o prophet_n and_o polycrates_n say_v citat_fw-la say_v loc._n supr_fw-la citat_fw-la of_o he_o that_o he_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v in_o all_o thing_n govern_v and_o direct_v by_o the_o afflatus_fw-la and_o suggestion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_o in_o the_o catalogue_n 147._o catalogue_n ap_fw-mi e●seb_n l._n 4._o c._n 26._o p._n 147._o of_o his_o write_n we_o find_v one_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o right_a way_n of_o live_v and_o concern_v prophet_n and_o another_o concern_v prophecy_n ii_o it_o be_v about_o the_o year_n clxx_o and_o the_o ten_o clxxi_o ten_o e●s●b_n chron._n ad_fw-la ann._n clxxi_o of_o m._n antoninus_n his_o brother_n l._n verus_n have_v die_v the_o year_n before_o of_o a_o apoplexy_n as_o he_o sit_v in_o his_o chariot_n when_o the_o persecution_n grow_v high_a against_o the_o christian_n greedy_a and_o malicious_a man_n take_v occasion_n from_o the_o imperial_a edict_n late_o publish_v by_o all_o the_o method_n of_o cruelty_n and_o rapine_n to_o oppress_v and_o spoil_v innocent_a christian_n whereupon_o as_o other_o so_o especial_o citat_fw-la especial_o e●seb_n h._n eccl._n loc_fw-la supr_fw-la citat_fw-la s._n melito_n present_v a_o apology_n and_o humble_a supplication_n in_o their_o behalf_n to_o the_o emperor_n wherein_o among_o other_o thing_n he_o thus_o bespeak_v he_o if_o these_o thing_n sir_n be_v do_v by_o your_o order_n let_v they_o be_v think_v well_o do_v for_o a_o righteous_a prince_n will_v not_o at_o any_o time_n command_v what_o be_v unjust_a and_o we_o shall_v not_o think_v much_o to_o undergo_v the_o award_n of_o such_o a_o death_n this_o only_a request_n we_o beg_v that_o yourself_o will_v please_v first_o to_o examine_v the_o case_n of_o these_o resolute_a person_n and_o then_o impartial_o determine_v whether_o they_o deserve_v punishment_n and_o death_n or_o safety_n and_o protection_n but_o if_o this_o new_a edict_n and_o decree_n which_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v be_v proclaim_v against_o the_o most_o barbarous_a enemy_n do_v not_o come_v out_o with_o your_o cognizance_n and_o consent_n we_o humble_o pray_v and_o that_o with_o the_o great_a importunity_n that_o you_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o be_v any_o long_o expose_v to_o this_o public_a rapine_n iii_o after_o this_o he_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n how_o much_o the_o empire_n have_v prosper_v since_o the_o rise_n of_o christianity_n and_o that_o none_o but_o the_o worst_a of_o his_o predecessor_n have_v entertain_v a_o implacable_a spite_n against_o the_o christian_n this_o new_a sect_n of_o philosophy_n say_v he_o which_o we_o profess_v heretofore_o flourish_v among_o the_o barbarian_n by_o which_o probable_o he_o mean_v the_o jew_n afterward_o under_o the_o reign_n of_o augustus_n your_o predecessor_n it_o spread_v itself_o over_o the_o province_n of_o your_o empire_n commence_v with_o a_o happy_a omen_n to_o it_o since_o which_o time_n the_o majesty_n and_o greatness_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n have_v mighty_o increase_v whereof_o you_o be_v the_o wished-for_a heir_n and_o successor_n and_o together_o with_o your_o son_n shall_v so_o continue_v especial_o while_o you_o protect_v that_o religion_n which_o begin_v with_o augustus_n and_o grow_v up_o together_o with_o the_o empire_n and_o for_o which_o your_o predecessor_n have_v together_o with_o other_o rite_n of_o worship_n some_o kind_n of_o reverence_n and_o regard_n and_o that_o our_o religion_n which_o be_v breed_v up_o with_o the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v bear_v for_o public_a good_a there_o be_v this_o great_a argument_n to_o convince_v you_o that_o since_o the_o reign_n of_o augustus_n there_o have_v no_o considerable_a mischief_n happen_v but_o on_o the_o contrary_a all_o thing_n according_a to_o every_o one_o desire_n have_v fall_v out_o glorious_a and_o successful_a none_o but_o nero_n and_o domitian_n instigate_v by_o cruel_a and_o ill-minded_n man_n have_v attempt_v to_o reproach_n and_o calumniate_v our_o religion_n whence_o spring_v the_o common_a slander_n concern_v we_o the_o injudicious_a vulgar_a greedy_o entertain_v such_o report_n without_o any_o strict_a examination_n but_o your_o parent_n of_o religious_a memory_n give_v a_o check_n to_o this_o ignorance_n and_o injustice_n by_o frequent_a rescript_n reprove_v those_o who_o make_v any_o new_a attempt_n in_o this_o matter_n among_o who_o be_v your_o grandfather_n adrian_n who_o write_v as_o to_o several_a other_o so_o to_o fundanus_n the_o proconsul_n of_o asia_n and_o your_o father_n at_o what_o time_n yourself_o be_v colleague_n with_o he_o in_o the_o empire_n write_v to_o several_a city_n particular_o to_o larissaea_n thessalonica_n athens_n and_o all_o the_o city_n of_o greece_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o create_v any_o new_a disturbance_n about_o this_o affair_n and_o for_o yourself_o who_o have_v the_o same_o opinion_n of_o we_o which_o they_o have_v and_o a_o great_a deal_n better_o more_o become_v a_o good_a man_n and_o a_o philosopher_n we_o promise_v ourselves_o that_o you_o will_v grant_v all_o our_o petition_n and_o request_n a_o address_v manage_v with_o great_a prudence_n and_o ingenuous_a freedom_n and_o which_o strike_v in_o with_o other_o apology_n present_v about_o the_o same_o time_n do_v not_o a_o little_a contribute_v to_o the_o general_a quiet_a and_o prosperity_n of_o christian_n iu._n nor_o be_v he_o so_o whole_o swallow_v up_o with_o care_n for_o the_o general_a peace_n of_o christian_n as_o to_o neglect_v the_o particular_a good_a of_o his_o own_o or_o neighbour_n church_n during_o the_o government_n of_o servilius_n paulus_n proconsul_n of_o asia_n sagaris_n bishop_n of_o laodicea_n have_v suffer_v martyrdom_n in_o the_o late_a persecution_n 147._o persecution_n ipse_fw-la milet._n ap_fw-mi euseb_n l._n 4._o c._n 26._o p._n 147._o at_o what_o time_n the_o controversy_n about_o the_o paschal_n solemnity_n be_v hot_o ventilate_v in_o that_o church_n some_o stranger_n probable_o urge_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o festival_n according_a to_o the_o roman_a usage_n celebrate_v it_o upon_o the_o lordsday_n contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o those_o church_n who_o have_v ever_o keep_v it_o upon_o the_o fourteen_o day_n of_o the_o moon_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o the_o quiet_v of_o which_o contention_n melito_n present_o write_v two_o book_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d concern_v the_o passover_n wherein_o no_o doubt_n he_o treat_v at_o large_a of_o the_o celebration_n of_o easter_n according_a to_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o asian_a church_n and_o therefore_o polycrates_n
the_o apology_n write_v in_o his_o behalf_n several_a thing_n note_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_n to_o extenuate_v the_o charge_n his_o assertion_n not_o dogmatical_a not_o intend_v for_o public_a view_n general_o such_o as_o be_v not_o determine_v by_o the_o church_n his_o book_n corrupt_v and_o by_o who_o his_o own_o complaint_n to_o that_o purpose_n the_o testimony_n of_o athanasius_n and_o theotimus_n and_o haymo_n in_o his_o vindication_n great_a error_n and_o mistake_v acknowledge_v what_o thing_n contribute_v to_o they_o his_o great_a kindness_n for_o the_o platonic_a principle_n s._n hierom_n be_v moderate_a censure_n of_o he_o his_o repent_v of_o his_o rash_a proposition_n his_o write_n enumerate_v and_o what_o now_o extant_a i._o origen_n call_v also_o adamantius_n either_o from_o the_o unwearied_a temper_n of_o his_o mind_n and_o that_o strength_n of_o reason_n wherewith_o he_o compact_v his_o discourse_n or_o his_o firmness_n and_o constancy_n in_o religion_n notwithstanding_o all_o the_o assault_v make_v against_o it_o be_v bear_v at_o alexandria_n the_o know_a metropolis_n of_o egypt_n unless_o we_o will_v suppose_v that_o upon_o some_o particular_a tumult_n or_o persecution_n raise_v against_o the_o christian_n in_o that_o city_n his_o parent_n flee_v for_o refuge_n to_o the_o mountainous_a part_n thereabouts_o where_o his_o mother_n be_v deliver_v of_o he_o and_o that_o thence_o he_o be_v call_v origenes_n 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d suid._n in_o voc_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 330._o t._n 2._o quasi_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o most_o conceive_v to_o be_v the_o etymology_n of_o his_o name_n one_o bear_v in_o the_o mountain_n but_o whether_o that_o be_v the_o proper_a derivation_n of_o the_o word_n or_o the_o other_o the_o particular_a occasion_n of_o its_o imposition_n let_v the_o reader_n determine_v as_o he_o please_v however_o i_o believe_v the_o reader_n will_v think_v it_o a_o much_o more_o probable_a and_o reasonable_a conjecture_n than_o what_o one_o 1._o one_o halloix_n not_o ad_fw-la orig._n defence_n c._n 1._o p._n 1._o suppose_n that_o he_o be_v so_o call_v because_o bear_v of_o holy_a parent_n the_o saint_n in_o scripture_n be_v as_o he_o tell_v we_o sometime_o metaphorical_o style_v mountain_n the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o i_o dare_v say_v that_o ever_o make_v that_o conjecture_n a_o learned_a man_n 182._o man_n voss_n de_fw-fr idol_n l._n 2._o c._n 10._o p._n 182._o suppose_v he_o rather_o and_o think_v no_o doubt_n can_v be_v make_v of_o it_o so_o call_v from_o orus_n a_o egyptian_a word_n and_o with_o they_o the_o title_n of_o apollo_n or_o the_o sun_n from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d no_o question_n which_o signify_v light_a or_o fire_n one_o of_o their_o principal_a deity_n hence_o orus_n the_o name_n of_o one_o of_o the_o egyptian_a king_n as_o it_o have_v be_v also_o of_o many_o other_o and_o thus_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d come_v diogenes_n one_o bear_v of_o jupiter_n so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v derive_v origenes_n one_o descend_v of_o or_o or_o orus_n a_o deity_n solemn_o worship_v at_o alexandria_n a_o conjecture_n that_o may_v have_v command_v its_o own_o entertainment_n do_v not_o one_o prejudice_n lie_v against_o it_o that_o we_o can_v hardly_o conceive_v so_o good_a a_o man_n and_o so_o severe_a a_o christian_n as_o origen_n father_n will_v impose_v a_o name_n upon_o his_o child_n for_o which_o he_o must_v be_v behold_v to_o a_o heathen_a deity_n and_o who_o he_o may_v see_v every_o day_n worship_v with_o the_o most_o sottish_a idolatry_n that_o he_o shall_v let_v he_o perpetual_o carry_v about_o that_o remembrance_n of_o pagan_a idolatry_n in_o his_o name_n which_o they_o so_o particular_o and_o so_o solemn_o renounce_v in_o their_o baptism_n but_o to_o return_v ii_o he_o be_v bear_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n clxxxvi_o be_v seventeen_o 202._o seventeen_o euseb_n h._n eccl._n l._n 6._o c._n 2._o p._n 202._o year_n of_o age_n at_o his_o father_n death_n who_o suffer_v ann._n chr._n ccii_o severi_n x._o his_o father_n be_v leonides_n who_o suidas_n 2._o suidas_n in_o voc_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 389._o tom._n 2._o and_o some_o other_o without_o any_o authority_n that_o i_o know_v of_o from_o the_o ancient_n make_v a_o bishop_n to_o be_v sure_a he_o be_v a_o good_a man_n and_o a_o martyr_n for_o the_o faith_n in_o his_o young_a year_n he_o be_v bring_v up_o under_o the_o tutorage_n of_o his_o own_o 202._o own_o euseb_n ibid._n p._n 202._o father_n who_o instruct_v he_o in_o all_o the_o ground_n of_o humane_a literature_n and_o together_o with_o they_o take_v especial_a care_n to_o instill_v the_o principle_n of_o religion_n season_v his_o early_a age_n with_o the_o notice_n of_o divine_a thing_n so_o that_o like_o another_o timothy_n from_o a_o child_n he_o know_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o be_v thorough_o exercise_v and_o instruct_v in_o they_o nor_o be_v his_o father_n more_o diligent_a to_o insinuate_v his_o instruction_n than_o the_o subject_n he_o manage_v be_v capable_a to_o receive_v they_o part_v of_o his_o daily_a task_n be_v to_o learn_v and_o repeat_v some_o part_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o he_o ready_o discharge_v but_o not_o satisfy_v with_o the_o bare_a read_n or_o recital_n of_o they_o he_o begin_v to_o inquire_v more_o narrow_o into_o the_o more_o profound_a sense_n of_o they_o often_o importune_v his_o father_n with_o question_n what_o such_o or_o such_o a_o passage_n of_o scripture_n mean_v the_o good_a man_n though_o seem_o reprove_v his_o busy_a forwardness_n and_o admonish_v he_o to_o be_v content_a with_o the_o plain_a obvious_a sense_n and_o not_o to_o ask_v question_n above_o his_o age_n do_v yet_o inward_o rejoice_v in_o his_o own_o mind_n and_o hearty_o bless_v god_n that_o he_o have_v make_v he_o the_o father_n of_o such_o a_o child_n much_o ado_n have_v the_o prudent_a man_n to_o keep_v the_o exuberance_n of_o his_o love_n and_o joy_n from_o run_v over_o before_o other_o but_o in_o private_a he_o give_v it_o vent_v frequent_o go_v into_o the_o chamber_n where_o the_o youth_n lie_v asleep_a and_o reverent_o kiss_v his_o naked_a breast_n the_o treasury_n of_o a_o early_a piety_n and_o a_o divine_a spirit_n reflect_v upon_o himself_o how_o happy_a he_o be_v in_o so_o excellent_a a_o son_n so_o great_a a_o comfort_n so_o invaluable_a a_o blessing_n be_v it_o to_o pious_a parent_n to_o see_v their_o child_n set_v out_o betimes_o in_o the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n and_o suck_v in_o religion_n almost_o with_o their_o mother_n milk_n iii_o have_v pass_v over_o his_o paternal_a education_n he_o be_v put_v to_o perfect_v his_o study_n under_o the_o institution_n of_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n than_o regent_n of_o the_o catechist_n school_n at_o alexandria_n where_o according_a to_o the_o acuteness_n of_o his_o part_n and_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o industry_n he_o make_v vast_a improvement_n in_o all_o sort_n of_o learning_n from_o he_o he_o betake_v himself_o to_o ammonius_n who_o have_v then_o new_o set_v up_o a_o platonic_a school_n at_o alexandria_n and_o have_v reconcile_v 1381._o reconcile_v hierocl_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr provide_v &_o fat._n ap_fw-mi phot._n cod._n ccxiu_o col_fw-fr 549._o &_o cod._n ccli_o col_fw-fr 1381._o those_o inveterate_a feud_n and_o difference_n that_o have_v be_v between_o the_o school_n of_o plato_n and_o aristotle_n and_o which_o have_v reign_v among_o their_o disciple_n till_o his_o time_n which_o he_o do_v say_v my_o author_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d out_o of_o a_o divine_a transport_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o philosophy_n despise_v the_o little_a opinion_n and_o wrangle_a contention_n of_o peevish_a man_n and_o propound_v a_o more_o free_a and_o generous_a kind_n of_o philosophy_n to_o his_o auditor_n among_o who_o be_v our_o origen_n as_o porphyry_n 96._o porphyry_n apud_fw-la euseb_n i●id_fw-la c._n 19_o p._n 220_o vid._n theod._n serm._n vi_o de_fw-fr provide_v p._n 96._o beside_o other_o witness_n who_o see_v origen_n when_o himself_o but_o a_o youth_n this_o ammonius_n be_v call_v saccas_n from_o his_o carry_a citat_fw-la carry_a vid._n theod._n loco_fw-la citat_fw-la sack_n of_o corn_n upon_o his_o back_n be_v a_o porter_n by_o employment_n before_o he_o betake_v himself_o to_o the_o study_n of_o philosophy_n one_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o eloquent_a man_n of_o those_o time_n a_o great_a philosopher_n and_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o platonic_a sect_n and_o which_o be_v above_o all_o a_o christian_a bear_v and_o bring_v up_o among_o they_o as_o citat_fw-la as_o loc._n citat_fw-la porphyry_n himself_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v though_o when_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o afterward_o upon_o mature_a consideration_n and_o his_o enter_v upon_o philosophy_n he_o renounce_v christianity_n and_o embrace_v paganism_n and_o the_o religion_n